Paper 14
Paper 14
Paper 14
A HISTORY
PAPER-14
Paper-14
BLOCK INTRODUCTION
The Mogul
beginning of the empire is conventionally dates back to the founder Baburs victory
over Ibrahim Lodi In the first battle of Panipath (1526).It reached its climax under
Akbar, Jahangir and Sahajan.Akbar transformed the Moghul empire in to a national
monarchy. He also forged matrimonial relation with several Hindu Rajput dynasty.He
separated religion from politics, rejected the Islamic theory of state and raised the
policy of religious toleration to the height of secularism. By associating with Rajput, he
strengthened the process of national state.His
scrupulously followed his
reversed the
the Akbars
policy of religious toleration and Moghul empire disintregated withina short period of
time.
Unit-1 deals with different sources of Moghul history.
Unit-11 analyses the foundation of Moghul empire by Babur. It further discusses the
problem of Humayun and emergency of Afgan power.It also analyses the conquest,
administration and religious policy of Akbar.
Unit-111 discusses the condition of Moghul empire in 17th and 18th century.In the first
section, it elaborates the administrative and religious policy of Jahangir, Sahajahan and
Aurangzeb. Further it elaborates, decline of Mogul empire, emergence ofregional states
and emergence of Marathas.
Unit-IV deals with the emergence of Portuguese colonial enterprise and its economic
and political consequence.It further analyses the invasion of Nadir Shah Ahmed Shah
Abdali .The next section discuses political, cultural and economic weakness on the eve
of the british Conquestof india.
Unit-1 SOURCES AND HISTORIAGRAPHY
`
Structure
1.Objective
1.1 Introduction
1.2 Literary Sources
1.2.1 Baburnama
1.2.2 Ain-I - Akbari
1.2.3 Tujuk-I-Jahangir
1.2.4 Muntakhab-Ul - Lulab
1.3 Foreign Travellers Account
1.4 Maratha Sources
1.5 Archeological Sources
1.5.1 Study of inscription
3
1.5.2 Coins
1.5.3 Paintings
UNIT- I
1.0 OBJECTIVES
elucidate the significance of Literary sources for the study of Mughal History.
understand the importance of Maratha and archacological sources for the study
of History.
Introduction
Aurangzeb who, however, stopped it in his eleventh regnal year.Besides,, such official
histories, biographical works great historical interst were also
period under survey.And we not entirely dependent upon chroniclers; we have in some
instances contemporary, independent historians.
The historians of the Mughal Period did not develop any philosophy of history
from which certain lessons may be drawn, and they mainly concerted on the political
history completely neglecting the cultural, religious and social aspects. So the historians
of this period certainly differed from the historians of the sultanate period in social
status class, out look, idion and approach. The element of personal gain, getting a
reward or repaying a debt of gratitude receded into the back ground or at least was not
so prominent now as in the previous period.
Another significant change was the secularization of the history. Though the
divine element is still noticeable, the humanistic aspect of the history tends to be more
prominent. This chapter shall deal with some of the prominent historians of the Mughal
period, and the contribution made by them to the medieval historiography.
(a) Literature Sources
1.2.1 Zahir-Al-Din Muhammad (Babur) Baburnama
Baburnama, literary Book of Babur or alternatively known as Tuzk-e-Babri is the name
given to the memoirs of Zahir-ud-Din
Baburnamah can be divided into three Parts. The first part begins with his
accession to the throne of Fargana and ends with his driving out from his flight to his
last invasion of lndia. The third part gives an account of his transactions in lndia. lt may
be noted that there are three important gaps in the memories of the forty seven and
ten years of his life, give an account of only 18 years.
ln his Memoirs Babur gives detailed account of the land, climate, vegetation,
trade, industry as well as social and political condition of the people. Talking of lndia he
says. "lt is a remarkable fine country. lt is quite a different world, compared with other
countries. lts hills and rivers, its forests and plains, its animals and plants, inhabitants
and their languages, its winds and rains all are of a different nature.' He makes a
reference to the economic prosperity and wealth of the country when he talks of the'
abundance of gold and silver'. We gather from his account that the food-grains, clothes
and other merchandise were not only cheap but also available in abundance. Talking of
the political conditions, Babur tell us that the country was divided into small kingdoms.
While the greater part of Hindustan was in the possession of the Emperor of Delhi, five
Muslim Kings and two Hindu kings ruled the hilly areas.
Babur's
observation
was
very
keen
and
his
style
was
pleasant and forthright. He describes even the minutest things with such meticulous
care that readers of his diary feel that the things are happenings before their very eyes.
Prof. Lanepool says'. "If ever there were a case, when the testimony of a single
historical document, unsupported by other evidence should be accepted as sufficient
proof, it is the case with Babur's Memoires No reader of this prince of autobiographers
can doubt his honesty or his competence as a witness and chronicler."Prof. Elliot also
considers Babur's Memories as one of the best and most faithful pieces of
autobiography.
Despite the highly useful character of his memories, we must remember that
"the historical truth presented by Babur in his Memories is mixed up in an almost
6
inextricable manner with his own opinions, sentiments, judgments and his philosophy of
life. His predilections colour all his observations, and while reading his Memoirs, we
seem to live with him, to think with him, move with the hectic speed that was peculiarly
his and yet stop to relect on the surroundings. Babur combined chronology with a deep
knowledge of geography. This formed a definite corollary to historical events and
helped him in forming the estimate of the resources, the climate, and the habits of the
people of a particular place". ln view of the rich content s of the Memoirs is one of
those priceless records which are for all time.
Akbarnamh was written by Abul Fazl at the command of Akbar and contains a
detailed history of his reign. He collected the martial for this work from the records and
narratives of the contemporaries and by interrogating the servants of the state and old
members of the illustrious families. Abul Fazl devoted almost seven years to complete
this work in 1596.
Akbarnamah consists of three volumes. The first volume traces the history of
House of Fimur till the death of Humayun. The second volume deals with the reign of
Akbar from 1556 to 1604. The third volume popularly known as Ain - l- Akbari, gives lot
a gazetter information about the then prevailing social and economic conditions of the
Empire. Making an assessment of the historical value of Akbarnamah.
Prof. V. A. Smith says.' "The historical matter in Abul Fazl's book is buried in a
mass of tedious rhetoric, and the author, and unblushing flatterer of his hero (Akbar)
sometimes conceals, or even deliberately perverts, the truth (e.g. the dating of Akbar's
birth with the story of his naming, and the account of his capitulation of Asingarh).
Never the less, the Akbarnamah, not withstanding its grave and obivious faults, must be
treated as the foundation for a history of Akbar's reign. lt chronology is more accurate
and detailed than that of the rival books by Nizamuddin and Badauni, and it brings the
story to a later date than they do.
Ain-i-Akbari, the other work accredited to Abul Fazl, as mentioned above, is the
third volume Akbarnamah. lt contains a detailed description of the empire and institutes
of Akbar. Prof. Luniya Says : "lt is a mine of information about the rules, regulations,
topography, revenue system, social habits and customs of the people of lndia and many
other things. Ain-l-Akbari is such a valuable and important book that no historian of
the Mughals can do with out it.
Ain-l-Akbari consists of five books each dealing with one particular aspect. The
various aspects dealt with this book include an account of Akbar's household and court;
the military and civil services and description of their ranks; the rules and regulations of
the judicial and executive departments; and details about the revenue system etc.
ln addition of these two outstanding works, Abut Fazl translated the Hindu
scripture Gita and Published Mkhtabat-l-Abul Fazla collection of official letters.
1.2.3 TUJUK - I JAHANGIR
Tuzuk-i-Jahangiri or Tuzuk Jahangiri is the autography of the Moghul Emperor
Jahangir.(1569-1609)It is also referred as Jahangir nama.Tuzuk-e Jahangir is written
Persian and follow the tradition of his great grandfather Babur.Janangir went a step
further and besides the history of his reign, he includes details like his reflections on art,
politics and also informations about his family.
The text details the first nineteen years of his reign, but gave up the writing of
his memoirs in seventeenth years of his reign. He then entrusted the task to Mutamad
khan, tha author of the iqbal nama, who continued the memoirs to the beginning of
nineteenth year.From wehere , it was taken up by Muhammed Hadi, who continued it
to jahangirs death.
It forms an important reference point for the era along with his father, Akbars
Akbarnama. First important printed version of Jahangirnama was by Sayyid ahmad
printed at Gazipur in 1863 and at Aligrah in 1864.Jahangirs autobiography also reflects
the royal ideology of Jahangirs view on various political, religious and social
issues.within the memoir, he noted many of his local level legislative policies in his lage
empire consisting of all of modern day India. Among them were his decrees to manage
and regulate the jagirdars. Jagirdars were holders of the Jahangir, the emperors land
grant title. The Jagirdar were to take the income of the land and use it mainly to
finance the maintenance of the troops and to address the town needs. Jahangir made
various attempts to prevent corruption within the Jagirdar. He prohibited each of them
from using the money for personal peofit by ordering the part of the land t income to
go to hospitals and infirmaries and for each town to be equipped with religious
9
buildings according to religion of that area.Jahangor also kept the jagirdar from gaining
interst infamily or land riches by ordering` for jagirdarsfromgaining interst in family or
land riches by ordering for jagirdars to seek his approval before marrying someone from
the town they ruled in.
Tuzuk-l-Jahangiri is the most important source for the study of the reign of
Jahangir. lt not only gives an account of the various riots and rebellions, wars, and
conquests and official regulations but also contains a candid account of emperor's daily
life. The Memories also provide a detailed account of the social, cultural and spiritual
life of the people. One of the outstanding qualities of his memoirs is that they are
marked by frankness. Jahangir even mentions how he got Abul Fazl murdered.
However, there is no reference to his marriage with Nurjahan.
1.2.4 Muhammad Hashim Alias Hashim Ali Khan Muntakhab - ul - Lubab
Kafi Khan, author of the Muntakhab-ul- lubab, belonged to a respectable family of
Delhi.His father, khwaja Mir, also a historian, was an officer of high rank in the service
of princeMurad Bakhsh and later on Aurangzeb. Kafi Khan grew up in Aurangzebs
service, and was employed by him for political and military affairs. In the reign of
Farrukh Siyar, he was made Diwan by Nizam-ul-Mulk.
The Muntakhab-ul-Lubab is a highly estmeed history , commenting with the incursion
of Babur and ending with the fourteenth year of Muhammed Shahs reign. Since
Aurangzeb had prohibited the recording of events of his time, Kafi khan completed a
minute register of all happenings of the period and published it after the death of
emperor.His work is very important as it contains an account of the reign of Aurangzeb.
Kafi khan was Shia, and therefore, showed particularly towords the shia nobles in his
work. He was prejudiced against the Turani nobles, excluding the Nizam-ul-Mulk, whom
10
he was serving and for whom he was full of praise.owing to this partiality he is
sometimes nicknamed Nizam-ul-Mulki.
Khafi khan informs us about the methods and principles which he has
followed in
sequences.He nowhere puts his fingers specifically on the role of the Mughal Emperor
in accelerating the pace of
Muhammedquasims opinion
iteas
class of newly promoted people from obscurity and poor social backgroung that had
upset the poitical equilibrium.
11
Khafi Khan ,however, gives a different pictures of divided loyalities for had connections
with the Nizam-ul-Mulk and he had respect for the Sayyid Brothers. His attachments to
the Sayiids who was to some extent was due to common religious affliations.he
therefore blames the turani Party in order to justify the actions of the Sayyid Brothers.
The circumstances under which the Nzam-ul-M left for Deccan had been discussed by
both Muhammed Quasim and Kafi Khan.
The reasons given by Khafi khan give an entirely different background to Nizam-ulmulks to quit the north. The account leaves upon ones mind the impression tha t khafi
Khan was anxious to justify that Nizam-ul-Mulks continued presence in the north was
not interst of the people. He says that there were several reasons which led to an
estrangement betewwn the Wazir and the Emperor Muhammed shah. These reasons
are1.It was during the period that the Mughal Court received the news that there was
political unrest in Persia and Muhammed khan, the Afgan, had overpowered sultan Hu
sssain Shah and had imprisoned him.He had annexed a considerable part of Persia and
brought
untold
miseries
Muhammedshah all
on
the
people.The
Nizam-ul
Mulk
recalled
before
the past events, when the sultan of Persia had rendered great
service to Babur and Humayun.He advised the Emperor to send his forces to help the
shah of Persia.He offered his service for this purpose. But when Emperor consulted his
upstart advisors, they imputed motives to the nizam-ul-mulk, and thus the scheme of
sending the forces to Persia was dropped.
2.The Nizam-ul-Mulk, advised the emperor to abolish the Jagirdari system and revoke
the assignment of Jagir in Khalisa. This proposal was also rejected.
3.He advised the Emperor to
favourites, as it had broughtbad name to him.But his practice was not dropped.
4.He desired the Emperor to agree to the reimposition of Jiziya, but the emperor did
not pay any heed to this proposal.
12
Kafi Khan makes a subtle attempt to creat an atmosphere in which the murder of
Farruk Siyar becomes inevitable and leads to a logical culmination of the tragedy. He
says that during his imprisonment, Farrukh siyar made an attempt to escape from the
prison by offereing bribes to person in whose custody he was placed.He offered a
mansab of 7000 to Abdullah khan, if he successfully manoeuvred his
escape from
prison and took him to raja Jai singh sawai, with whose help, he thught ,he would be
able to reestablish himself.the circumstances leading to death of Rafi-ud-Daula and
Rafi-ud-Darjat are similarly a moot point Khafi Khan says that they died a natural
death.Muhammed Qasim, on the other hand, says their death was the result of slow
poisoning. He gives several reasons which motivated the sayyid Brothers to perpetuate
the crime.
The princes were devoid of wishdom, lacked valour and were illiterate. The Sayyid
Brothers found that they could not carry on administration, as they desired. In
consequence they removed them by slow poisoning.Till then he had achived success in
all matters, but noe they feared any discomfiture should befall on them and disagrace
them, . So , the Princes were removed. Kafi Khan, on the otherhand , following the
traditional style of writing history, has devoted more space to describing the minutest
details of wars and campaigns.he has avoided making suggestions to cure the malaise
that was eating into the very vitals of the Mughal body politic.
Conclusion
A Survey of the works of the above historians of the Mughal period confirms the
view of Prof. Jagdish Narayan Sarkar that they "differ from the writers of the sultanate
period in social status, class, out look, idiom and approach, The element of personal
gain, getting a reward or repaying a debt of gratitude receded into the background or
at least was not so prominent now as in the previous period. The most significant
change was the secularistation of history in the Mughal age'. The other changes
noticeable in the historiography of Mughal age are that history tends to be more
humanistic than divine. Even the didactic element diminishes and the historians devoted
13
more attention to the events and measure taken and their effect and do not make
general or vague moral warnings.
1.4
MARATHA- SOURCES
Introduction :
Maratha sources are important
Century The Marathas started making history, but it took quite a long time for them
start writing history. Most of the Maratha families realized the importance of what was
going on around them. Some of them maintained a record of the happenings; and
Some other who had actually participated in the events sketched their experience in
their personal diaries.
Many of the historical exploits were rendered into ballads, and passed on from
generation to generation. But the Persian version o the Marathi Chronicles are the
Bakhars which form a priceless source of historical matrial from the seventeenth to the
nineteenth century. They furnish us useful information about the rulers, the ministers,
the Chieftains, the Saints, the campaigns and so on. But they have got to be used with
as much care as the Perian chronicles, for these bakhars were written from memory
long after the events had taken place.
prevent them from being called sober history. They deals mostly with pomp and
pageantry, the court and the taking, the war and the battles, and give us very little
about the maintream at the common man's life, his social, cultural and economic
aspects. Their chronology is faulty, their language is archaic, and their generalogy is
highly questionable . They have a truly oriental touch about them, as many of them
start with the age of the panda Shivaji tracing their geneology to the Pandavas through
Prithiviraj Chauhan and other Rajput Kings of Udaipur.
Good rulers like Shivaji are shown as incarnations of God, and bad rulers like his
son, Sambhaji are punished for ignoring dharma. ln short these bakhars share many
features of Persian Chronicles, and its authors might have been influenced greatly by
14
the tvluslim tradition of historical writing. lt is a pity that these bakhars were not
influenced by the western art of observing an event, and recording its occurrence.
Although the Marathas came in contract with the English and the French, these bakhars
make no mention of them. Even the type of historical material that existed in the
Mughal period such as the Ain-e-Akbar, the several biographies, the official histories
and the personal diaries are not present in the Maratha historical literature.
The period of the bakhars ends in 1818 when British Supremacy was established
all over the Maratha dominions. with this a new kind of historiography emerges.
Maratha scholars evince interest in the study of inscriptions of ancient lndia. Grant
Duff's History of the Marathas (1826) was an eye-opening to the Marathas, who
translated into Marathi and brought out two editions.
With Macaulay's introduction of English education, with woods Dispatch on
educational reforms, and with growing realization of lndia's own glory, the Maratha
scholars took to serious study of history from the second half of the nineteenth century.
ln 1867 Kirtane Published his book challenging some of the views of Grant Duff'. ln
1878 a Marathi Journal, Kavyetihas Samgraha Patra Yadi was brought out which
became a regular feature publishing family accounts, Chronology and ballads. This
journal created a lot of interest in history but it died in 1890. lt gave place to the next
great step when Rajwade took the momentous decision to collect and print old papers,
a task which was rightly earned the gratitude of all scholars of Maratha history.
It was Rajwade who inaugurated the age documents in true Ranke style. The
task was not all easy. lt demanded the energy of a giant to hunt for the material to
obtain it from the unwilling hands of its owners and to study, edit and publish them. He
left no stone unturned to collect the material, ignored no temple, viltage, mosque, cave
or hill fort, and spread no jagirdar, priest, peasant, or person whether high or low. ln
the true Mackenzie spirit he made a ,wide survey, and the fruit was rewarding. He
copied these documents, edited them, and Printed them at his own cost, although he
was by no means rich. With money borrowed from friends, the volumes of ltihasachi
15
Sadhanen (sources of the Maratha History) started pouring in year after year, until the
mighty man breathed his last in 1926. The scope of these papers is wide, from Shivaji's
time to the last of the Peshwas. He is surely a brilliant star on the horizon of lndian
scholarship. For what he gathered in a life time was enough for generations of scholars
to work upon.
Next importance to Rajwade stands the name of Vasudeo Shastri Kharii who
carried on the task of Ciitical Scholarship, collecting data, and editing them with copious
notes. The records of the Patwardhan Chiefs of Miroj with their letters and dispatches in
twelve volumes stand to the glory of Kharp. Parasnis of Satara, though not so brilliant
as the other two, carried on the task so well begun by his two illustrious
contemporaries. His volumes lthihasa Sangrgha brought out the records of the Raja of
Satara and Nana Phadnarilsl He wrote history as well. His Rani of Jhansi and the
Marathas in Bundelkhand were early attempts to write history. interest in Maratha
history increased to such a pitch that in 1910 a research Organization, the Bharat ltihas
Samsodak Mandali came into existence, which is doing a good job even today.
Another treasure house of historical knowledge was the official Record office
which contained land Settlement papers used for settling alienation disputes. For a long
time they were in accessible to
Government to permit the scruting of these records, which was done by parasnls. He
brought out thirteen volumes from Peshwa's Rozkhirds or daily accounts. The Peshwas
records comprised 35,000 bundeles, which were permitted to be examined by another
great name in Maratha history, G.S. Sardesai, who devoted almost his lifetime editing
these records under the title the Peshwa Daftar in 45 volumes. From 1890 to 1960
almost 200,000 documents have been published, and the search for more documents
has not yet stopped. No region in lndia is as rich as Maharastra is in historical
documents, and it is heartening to know that the Maratha Scholars have taken up the
task of writing good history in right earnest on all aspects of Maratha life and culture.
1.5(d)ARCHAEOLOG ICAL SOURCES
16
House,
Bombay,1944.)
1.5.2 Coins:As regards numistic sources, we have several important modern publication
describing the coins of the period. These are of great volue in setting conficting dates,
and also throwing light on the economic condition of the age. These works are:
1. Edward Thomas, the chronicles of the a Pathan kings of Delhi, illustrated by
coins, inscriptions and other antiquarian memories (London, Trubner 1871). This
work furnishes some information about the coinage and history of the Mughul
age also.
2. Lane Poole, Stanley, The coins of the Mughul Emperors of Hindustan in the
British Museum, London, 1892.
3. Wright, H. Nelson, A catalogue of the coins in the indin Museum, Calcutta, Vol.III
ford 1908.
4. Writchead, R.B., Catalogue of coints in the Punjab Museum, Lahore, Vol.III
Oxford, 1914.
5. Brown, C.J., Catalogue of coins in the luck now Museum,2 Vols, 1920.
6. Hodivala, S.H. Historical Studies in Mugul Numismatics, Calcutta,1923.
7. Rodgers, C.J., Copper Coins of Akbar(JASB, part I, 1880; 1885)
8. Rodgers, C.J., Rave Copper Coins (JASB, part I, 1895).
18
19
UNIT-II
FOUNDATION OF MOGHUL EMPIRE
Structure
2.0 Objectives
2.1 Introduction
2.1 Political condition of india on the eve of Baburs invasion
2.1.1 Condition of Mewar
20
21
OBJECTIVES
In the aforesaid unit you have gone through various sources of Mughal History. In this
unit you will know about the establishment
2.1
Introduction :
The political condition of
India
conquest of India .On the basis of Tuzuk-i-Baburi and other historical sources,
the political condition of India on the eve of Baburs invasion can be analysed.
According to Dr Iswari Prasad India was a congeries of States at the opening of
the 16th centuries and likely to be easy prey of an invader who had the strength
and will to attempt her conquest.
The disintregation of Delhi Sultanate started since the Muhammed-bin Tughlug.
The authority of Ibrahim Lodi, who ascended the throne of Delhi in 1517, did not
extend beyond Delhi, Agra.
share the carpet with Ibrahims father and grandfather, were made to stand in
his durbar in an humble posture, with their arms folded across their breasts. The
sultan publicly declared that kingship know no kinship and that all his nobles
were his vassals and servants. When the Afghan peers made an attempt to
assert
their
hereditary
privilege,
he
meted
out
rigorous
punishment.
Consequently, many of the top ranking Lodi, Lohani, Farmuli and Niyazi Afghans
revolted against him and he had to resort to force to suppress their rebellion.
This led to widespread confusion and alarm.
Alamkhan Lodi, an uncle of the Sultan, clamied the throne of Delhi for himself,
and he was supported by many disgruntled nobles. The Governor of the Punjab, Daulat
Khan Lodi, resisted the authority of the Sultan and behaved like a de- facto rular. The
nobles of Bihar rallied round Dariya Khan Lohani, on whose death his son Bahar Khan
(Bahadur Khan), declared his independence. In Jaunpur, too the Afghans rebelled
under Nasir Khan Lohani . The Lodi Kingdom was thus greatly distracted and the
Ssultan lost must of his prestige. He clashed with Rana Sanga of Mewar who defeated
him. His death, in April, 1526, was followed by a period of disturbance which
considerably weakened the kingdom of Gujarat. In July, 1526 his son, Bahadur Shah,
became king and he proved to be an ambitious and successful ruler.
2.1.1 Mewar - Mewar was another formidable power in India. Its capital was at
Chittor. The reigning family traced decent since 6th century A.D. The dynasty produced
a series of remarkable rulers among whom Rana Kumbha (1433- 1468) who occupied
a pre-eminent place. He strengthened the defences of his dominion by erecting many
forts and also beautified his capital with stately buildings. He defeated the Sultan of
Mewar ahd established the supremacy of Mewar in central Hindustan. Baburs
contemporary on the throne of Chittor was the famous Rana Sangram Singh, popularly
known as Rana Sanga. He was a great warrior and general hero of a hundred fights, he
received as many as eighty wounds from sward and lance. Unlike the generality of
23
Rajput Chiefs, Sanga possessed instinits of a politician and a statemen. He had cleverly
turned the social pre-eminence enjoyed by his family among the Rajputs of the land
into his Political Supremacy in Rajsthan . He was followed by two hundred vassal Rajput
chiefs. Rana Sangas is ambition was to establish Hindu rule over Delhi. In Pursuance of
this ambitious design he is said to have promised Babur that he would invade Ibrahim
Lodis territory from the side of Agra while Babur proceeded against him from the north.
Rana Sanga was, thus, the greatest Hindu ruler in northern India in the entire country.
2.1.2 Sindh : The province of Sindh was a feeble state in the first quarter of 16 th
century . It become independent at the end of Muhammad-bin-Tughlugs reign. The
Sumra dynasty, which had established its rule over the province towards the middle of
the 14th century was in decay, and Shah Beg Arghun, Governor of Kandhar, who was
hard pressed by Babur was casting longing eyes on Sindh. In 1520, being complelled to
abanandon Khandar to Bahur, Shah Beg turned Towards Sindh, defeated the Sumras
and occupied the province. His son, Shah Hussain, consolidated his rule and even
annexed Multan. At the time of Baburs invasion, the power of Arghuns in Sindh was at
its height.
2.1.3 Bengal
Bengal was a fertile country . It was an independent Kingdom under the Husaini
dynasty. Ala-ud-din Husain (1493-1518), was the first ruler of this dynasty and
was
an able monarch. He extended the boundary of his Kingdom as far as the borders of
Orissa, and encroached upon Kamatpur in Kooch Bihar on the border of Assam. As he
had given shelter to Hussain Shah Shargi of Jaunpur, he came into conflit with Sikandar
Lodi of Delhi, but was obliged to make peace and agree to respect the eastern frontier
of Bihar. His son, Nusrat Shah, was a contemporary of Babur with whom he had to
make peace. Nusrat Shah was an able ruler and patron of Bengali literature. The
Mahabharata was
Malwa In Central India three important States were competing for domination
, Malwa, Gujarat and Mewar. In the beginning of the 16th Century, Mewar had attained
a position of pre-eminence and Malwa had become independent under Dilwar Khan
Ghuri. But in 1435 Mahmud Khan, the minister of Ghuri King, had seized the throne and
laid the foundation of the Khiliji Dynasty. Mahmud Khiliji was an able and energetic
ruler. The contemporary of Babur on the throne of Malwa was Mohmud II, who was an
incompetent ruler. During his reign Malwas fell under the control of Medini Rai, a gallant
Rajput Chief who was appointed Prime Minister and who gave important positions of
trust and responsibility to his clansmen. This excited the jealousy of the Muslim nobles
who tried to bring about the overthrow the Medini Rai with the help of the sultan of
Gujarat. Medini Rai, however, secured the support of Rana Songa of Mewar who
defeated Mahmud II and carried him a prisoner to Chittor. With characteristic Rajut
generousity, the Rana released his royal captive and restored him to his Kingdom. Even
this act of generosity failed to save Malwa which continued to be distracted by factious
strife.
Gujarat- Gujrat got its independence under Zafar Khan in 1401. One of the famous
ruler of gujrat was Mahmud Begrah(1458-1511 )The Province of Gujarat had severd its
connection with Delhi 1401 when Zafar Khan, asserted his independence and ascended
the throne under the title of Muzaffar Shah. One of the most remarkable rulers of this
dynasty was Mahmud Begarha(1458-1511). The ruler of Gujarat at the time of Baburs
invasion was Muzaffar Shah II who had succeeded Mahamud Begarha in 1511. He had
to fight throughout his reign.
Punjab- Punjab was nominally a part of the Kingdom of Delhi. But its Governer, Daulat
Khan Lodi, was not on good terms with Sultan.He escaped from Delhi, informed Daulat
Khan that the Sultan harboured evil designs and as soon as he would be free from his
present difficulties he would turn his attention towards the Punjab. Daulat khan made
preparations for asserting his independence and invited Badur to help him in his
25
designs. The north western frontier province of the Sultanate of Delhi was thus not in a
position to put up any resistance against a foreign invader.
Kashmir The independent Kingdom of Kashmir was established by Shah Mirza in
1339. It is situated in the north-east part of the Punjab.
adventurer,and had entered the service of Hindu prince of the Happy valley.
He
`seized the throne in 1339 and laid the foundation of a Muslim dynasty. The most
notable Sultan of Kashmir was Zain-ul-Abidin (1420-70). He followed the enlightened
and liberal policy of religious toleration and patronage of Sanskrit literature, He is
deservedly called the Akbar of Kashmir. After his death in 1470 anarchy ensued. As it
was situated far away from Delhi and was in a state of distraction. Kashmir did not
exercise much influence on the polities of northern India.
Orissa- The Hindu Kingdom of Orissa was a considerable state and was under powerful
rulers. It had not been effectually subjugated so far by any Sultan of Delhi. Orissa,
however, did not exercise any great influence on the politics of northern India. But it
served one useful purposes namely, that of acting as an effective obstruction to the
expansion of Bengal towards the south.
Khandesh- Khandesh, was founded by Malik Rja Faruqi.It was situated in the valley
of the river Tapti. Khandesh was independent since the last decade of the 14th Century.
The founder of the dynasty, Malik Raja He had peaceful reign and died in 1399. Form
the very beginning, the Sultans of Gujarat were desirous of establishing their
supremacy over Khandesh. Hence, the two kingdoms were continually at war. After the
death Daud in 1508. Khandesh was plunged into disorder owing to factious fights of
rival claimants to its throne, one of whom was supported by Ahmadnagar and another
by Gujarat. Sulatan Mohamud Begarha of Gujarata ultimately succeeded in placing his
candidate, Adil Khan III, on the throne of Khandesh. He died on 25th August, 1520 and
was succeeded by his son, Muhammad I. Owing to its distance from Delhi and weak
condition, Khandesh did not play an important part in the Politics of the period.
26
south. Baburs contemporary on its throne was Krishnadeva Raya, the greatest ruler
produced by Vijayanagar and the most notable in the whole of the country during the
epoch. Besides being a great soldier and general who extended the boundary of his
Kingdom by defeating his rivals and neighbours, he was a cultured patron of literature
and art, politically, economically and culturally, This Kingdom was at its height at the
time of Babus invasion of Northern India . Foreign travelers and diplomats were
dazzled by its wealth, prosperity and power, Although , Vijayangar did not exert much
influence on the politics of Northern India, it served the useful purpose of checking the
Muslim expansion southward and preserved the ancient religion and culture of Southern
India.
These states, ambitious as they were of establishing their individual supremacy,
were at perpetual war with one another. Not only was the political expansion of the
internally torn Sultanate of Delhi successfully checked by Rajput chivalry under Rana
Sanga, but even its, very existence was in danger in view of the Rajput ambition to
establish their rule over Delhi. In fact, Sultan Ibrahim had suffered a severe defeat at
the hands of the Sisodias of Mewar and was compelled to give up his scheme of
aggressive conquest. In central Hindustan both the Muslim Kingdoms of Malwa and
27
Gujarat had suffered considerably at the hands of the Rana of Chittor. In the east, the
expansion of the Muslim Kingdom of Bengal had been barred by the Hindu rulers of
Orissa and Assam. In the Deccan, emire of Vijayangar had so far successfully checked
the southward expansion of the Bahmani Kingdom and its successors, the five
Kingdoms of the Deccan. Thus, in every part of the India Turko. Afghan and indigenous
Muslim Chiefs had brought to bay obliged to fight for their very existence.
Conclusion
lndia was thus a conflicting of States at the opening of the 16th centuries . The
lndian rulers maintained huge army in order to expand their Kingdom. Their political
and military organization suffered from intrinsic weakness since it was based on
feudalism. The lndian rulers were unaware of superior technique of warfare, including
the use of artillery which had became quite popular with their counterpart in central
Asia. With such a state of affairs lndia was likely to be easy prey to an invader who had
the potency and determination to attempt her conquest.
fifteenth century.After the collapse of the Mongol empire in the fourteenth century,
28
Timur unified lran and Turan under single rule once again. Timur's empire extended
from the lower Volga to the river lndus, and included Asia Minor (modern Turkey, lran,
Trans - Oxiana, Afghanistan and a part of the Punjab). Timur died in 1404, but his
grandson, Shahrukh Mirza , was able to keep lntact a huge of Part of his empire. He
gave support to arts and letters, and in his time, Samargand and Heart became the
Cultural center of West Asia. The ruler of Samarqand had great reputation in the whole
Islamic World.
During the second half of the fifteenth century largly due to the Tlmurid custom
of partitioning the empire., the power of Timurid declined. Various Timurid principalities
which arose were always fighting and squabbling among themselves. This provided an
opportunity to two new elements to come to the forefront. From the north, a Mongal
tribe, the Uzbeks, thrust into Trans - Oxiana. The Uzbeks had become Muslims, but
were looked down upon by the Timurids who considered them to be uncultured
barbarians.Further to the West, a new dynasty, the Safavid dynasty, began to dominate
lran. The Safavids descended from an order of saints who traced their origin to the
prophet. They supported the Shiite ,see him among the Muslims, and persecuted those
who were not prepared to accept the Shiite tenet the Uzbeks, on the other hand - were
sunni. Thus, political divergence between these two elements
was embittered by
sectarian conflict. Further to the west of lran, the power of the Ottoman Turks was
rising. They wanted to control eastern Europe as well as lran and lran.
Thus, the scene was set for the conflict of three mighty empires in Asia during the
sixteenth century.
Babur succeeded to Farghana, a small state in lrans Oxiana at the younger
age of 14, in 1494. unconscious of the Uzbek danger the Timurid princes were busy in
fighting on another. Babur too made a bid to defeat Samargand from his uncle. He won
the city twice by but lost it in no time on both the occasions. The second time the
Uzbek chief shaibani Khan was called in to help oust Babur. Shaibani defeated Babur
29
and conquer Samargand, soon, he overran the rest of the Timurid Kingdoms in the
area. This forced Babur to move towards Kabul which he conquered in 1504. For the
nextly years, Babur kept biding his time for the reconquest of his home land from the
Uzbeks. He tried to enlist the help of his uncle the ruler of Heart, in the enterprise but
to no avail. Ultimately, Heart, too was overran by Shaibani Khan. This led to a direct
conflict between the uzbeks and the Safavids since the latter arso laid craim to Heart
and the surrounding area which is called Khorasan by contemporary writers. ln a
famous battle in 1510, shah lsmail, the Shah of lran, defeated and Killed Shaibani Khan.
Babur now made another attempt to recover samargand, this time with the help of the
lranian Forces. He was duly installed at Samarqand, but chafed under the control of the
lranian generals who wanted treat Babur as the governor of an lranian province rather
as an independent prince. Mean while, the Uzbeks recovered rapidly from their defeat.
Once again Babur was ousted from samarqand and had to return to Kabul. Finally, shah
lsmail himself was defeated in a famous battle by the ottaman sultan, thus leaving the
Uzbeks masters of Trans - Oxiana.
These developments finally required Babur to look towards lndia.
2.1.6 Conquest of lndia
Like countless earlier invaders from central Asia, Babur was drawn to lndia by the
lure of its tremendous wealth. lndia was the land of gold and riches. Baburs ancestor,
Timur, had not only carried a enormous treasure and many skilful artisans, who helped
him to consolidate his Asian empire and restore his capital, but also annexed some
areas in the Punjab. These areas remained in the possession of Timur's successors for
several generations. When Babur occupied Afghanistan, he felt that he had a legal right
to these areas.
Another cause why Babur conqured the punjab parganas was the meager
income of Kabul. The historian Abul Fazl remarks ,He (Babur) ruled over Badakhshan,
Qandhar and Kabul which did not yield sufficient income for the requirements of the
30
army, in fact, in some of the border territories the expense on controlling the armies
and administration was greater than the income". with these meagre respiroces Babur
could not provide well for his begs and kinsmen. He was also apprehensive of an Uzbek
attack on Kabul, and considered lndia to be a good place oi refuge, and a suitable base
for operations against the Uzbeks.
The Political condition in north-west lndia was suitable for Babur's entry into
lndia. Sikandar Lodi had died in 1517, and lbrahim Lodi had succeeded him. lbrahim's
efferts to create a large centralized empire had alarmed the Afghan chief as well as the
Rajputs. Amongst the most powerful of the Afghan chiefs was Daulat Khan Lodi, the
governor of the Punjab, who had almost an independent ruler. Daulat Khan attempted
to conciliate lbrahim Lodi by sending his son to his court to pay homage. At the
sametime, he wanted to strengthen his position by annexing the frontier tracts of
Bhina, etc.
ln 1518, , Babur subjugated the Powerful fort of Bhina. He then sent letters and
verbal messages to Daulat Khan and lbrahim Lodi, asking for the cession of the areas
which had belonged to the Turks. But Daulat Khan detained Babur's envoy at Lahore,
neither granting him all audicnce nor allowing him to go to lbrahim Lodi. when Babur
returned to Kabul, Daulat Khan expelled his agent from Bhina.
ln 1520-21, Babur once again crossed the lndus, and easily captured Bhirna and
Sialkot, the twin gateways to Hindustan. Lahore also capitulated to him. He might have
proceeded further but for the news of a revolt at Gandhar, he retraced his steps, and
after a siege of a year and a half recaptured Gandhar. Thus reassured, Babur was once
again able to turn his attention towards lndia.
It was about this time that Babur acknowledged an embassy from Daulat Khan
Lodi, led his son, Dilawar Khan. They invited Babur to lndia, and suggested that he
should displace lbrahim Lodi since he was a tyrant and enjoyed no support from his
nobles. lt is probable that a messenger from Rana Sanga arrived at the same time,
31
inviting Babur to invade lndia. These embassies convinced Babur that the time was ripe
for his conquest of the whole of the Punjab, it not of lndia itself.
ln 1525, while Baburwas at Peshawar, he received the news that Daulat Khan Lodi had
Changed sides again. He had collected an army of 30,000-40,000 men, ousted Babur's
men from Sialkot, and was marching on Lahore. At Babur's approach, the army of
Daulat Khan rnelted away. Dault Khan submitted and was pardoned. Thus, within three
weeks of crossing the lndus' Babur became the master of the Punjab.
The Battle of Panipath(1526)
Baburs conflict with
lbrahim Lodi
was obvious.
marching towards Delhi. lbrahim Lodi met Babur at Panipat with a force estimated at
100,000 men and 1000 elephants. Since the lndian armies generally contained large
holders of servants, the fighting men on lbrahim Lodi's side must have been far less
than this figure. Babur had crossed the lndus with a force of 12000, but this had been
swelled by his army in lndia, and the large number of Hindustani nobles and soldiers
who joined Babur in the Punjab. Even then, Babur's army was numerically second-rate.
Babur strengthened his position by resting one wing of his army in the city of Panipat
which had a large number of houses, and protected the other by means of a ditch filled
with branches of trees. ln front, he lashed together a large number of carts, to act as a
defending well. Between two carts, breastworks were erected on which soldiers could
rest their guns and fire. Babur calls this device an Ottoman (Runi) device, for it had
been used by the Ottomans in their famous battle against Shah lsmail of lran. Babur
had also secured the services of two Ottoman master-gunners, Ustad Ali and Mustafa.
The use of gunpowder had been gradually developing in lndia. Babur says that he used
it for the first time in his attack on the fortress of Bhirna. Apparently, gunpowder was
know in lndia but its use become common in north lndia from the time of Babur's
advent.
32
lbrahim Lodi was unware of the strategy of Babur. He had apparently expected
Babur to fight a mobile mode of warfare which was usual with the central Assians,
making rapid advance or retreating as the need arose. After skirmishing for seven or
eight days, lbrahim Lodi's forces came out for the fateful battle. Seeing the strength of
Babur's position, they hesitated; while lbrahim was still reorganizing his forces, the two
extreme wings of Babur's army wheeled round and attacked lbrahim's forces from the
side and rear. Babur's gunners used their guns with good effect from the front. But
Babur gives a large part of the credit of his victory to his bowmen. Curiously, he makes
little reference to lbrahim's elephants. Apparently, lbrahim had little time to use them.
Despite these early setbacks, lbrahim Lodis army fought courageously. The battle raged
for two or three hours. lbrahim Lodi fought to the last, with a group of 5000-6000
people around him. lt is estimated that besides him, more than 15,000 of his men were
killed in the battle.
The battle of Panipat is regarded as one of the significant battles of lndian
history. It broke the back of Lodi supremacy, and brought under Babur's control the
entire area upto Delhi and Agra.
relived Babur from his financial difficulties. The rich territory up to Janupur also lay
open to Babur. However, Babur had to wage two hard fought battles, one against Rana
Sanga of Mewar, and the other against the eastern Afghans, before he could
consolidate his hold on this area. Viewed from this angle, the battle of Panipat was not
as decisive in the political field as has been made out. lts real importance lies in the fact
that it opened a new phase in the struggle for domination in north lndia.
The difficulties of Babur after his victory at Panipat were manifold. Many of his
Begs were not prepared for a long compaign in lndia. With the one set of the hot
weather, their misgivings had increased, They were far away from home in a strange
and hostile land. Babur tells us that the people of lndia displayed "remarkable hostility',
abandoning their villages at the approach of the Mughal armies. Obviously, the
33
memories of Timurs sacking and plundering of the towns and villages were still fresh in
their minds.
Babur knew that the resources in lndia alone would anable him to found strong
empire and satisfy his begs. "Not for us the poverty of Kabul again", he records in his
diary. He thus took a firm stand, proclaiming his intention to stay on in lndia, and
granting leave to a number of his begs who wanted to go back to Kabul. This
immediately cleared the air. But it also invited the hostility of Rana Sanga who began
his preparations for a showdown with Babur.
The Battle of Khanwa(1529)
The rivalry between Rana Sangha and Ibrahim Lodi for the domination of
eastern Rajsthan and Malwa was well known. After defeating Mahmud Khalji of Malwa,
the arrival of the Rana had gradually extended up to Piliya Khar a small river in the
neigh bourhood of Agra. The establishment of an empire in the lndo Gengetic valley by
Babur was a threat to Rana Sanga. Sanga set preparations afoot to expel Babur or, at
any rate, to confine him to the Punjab.
Babur accuses Rana Sanga of infringe of accord. He says that Sanga had invited
him to lndia, and promised to join him against lbrahim Lodi, but made no move while
he (Babur) conquered Delhi and Agra.
We do not know what exact agreement Sanga had made. He might have hoped for a
long drawn out warfare during which he (Sanga) would have been able to seize the
areas he coveted. Or he might have hoped that like Timur, Babur, would with drew
after sacking Delhi and weakening the Lodis. Babur's decision to stay on in lndia entirely
changed the situation.
Many Afghans, including Mahmud Lodi, a younger brother of Ibrahim Lodi, rallied
to Rana sanga, in the hope of regaining the throne of Delhi in case Sanga won. Hasan
34
Khan Mewati, the ruler of Mewat, also cast in his lot with Sanga. Almost all the Rajput
rulers sent contingents to serve under Rana Sanga.
The status of Rana Sanga and his early achievement against some of the distant
Mughal posts such as Bayana, disheartened Baburs soldiers. To rally them, Babur
solemnly declared the war against Sanga to be a jihad. on the eve of the battle He
empted all the wine jars and broke the wine flasks to demonstrate what a staunch
Muslim he was. He also, banned the sale and purchase of wine throughout his
dominions and established customs taxes on the Muslims.Having carefully selected a
site, Babur entrenched himself at Khanwa about 40 km from Agra. As at Panipat, he
lashed together a number of wagons as an outer bastion and dug a trench in front for
double protection. Gaps were left in the defences for his musketeens to five and
advance behind wheeled tripods.
The battle of Khanwa (1527) was violently contested. According to Babur,
Sangas forces exceeded 200,000 including 10,000 Afghan cavalrymen, and an equal
forces fielded by Hasan Khan Mewati. As usual these figures may be greafly
exaggerated, though Baburs forces were undoubtedly inferior in number. Sanga made
fierce attacks on Babur's right and almost breached it. However, the Mughal artillery
took a heavy toll of life, and slowly, Sangas forces were pushed back. At this juncture,
Babur ordered, his soldiers in the center, who had been sheltering behind their tripods,
to launch an attack the artillery also advanced behind the chained wagons. Sangas
forces were thus hemmed in, and were defeated after a great slaughter. Rana Sanga
escaped and wanted to renew the conflict with Babur. But he was poisoned by his own
nobles who considered such as a course to be dangerous and desperate.
Thus died one of the most brave warrior produced by Rajasthan. With Sanga's
death, the vision of a integrated Rajasthan extending upto Agra received a serious
setback.
35
The Battle of Khanwa consolidated Baburs position in the Delhi Agra region.
Babur strengthened his position further by conquering the chain of forts - Gwalior,
Dholpur, etc., last of Agra. He also annexed large parts of Alwar from Hasan Khan
Mewati. He then led a compaign against Medini Rai of Chanderi in Malwa. Chanderi was
captured after the Rajput defenders and fighting to the last man and their women
performed Juhar. Babur had to cut short his plan of further campaigns in the area on
hearing of the mounting activities of the Afghans in eastern Uttar Pradesh.
The Afghans
inspite
of Afgan defeat , they did not reconcile to the Mughal rule in India .
Eastern Uttar Pradesh was still under the command of the Afghan chiefs who had
tendered their allegiance to Babur but were prepared to throw it off at any time. The
Afghan Sardars were being backed by Nusarat shah, the ruler of Bengal, ' who had
married a daughter of Ibrahim Lodi. A number of times, the Afghans had ousted the
Mughal officials in eastern Uttar Pradesh and reached up to Kanauj. But their greatest
weakness was the lack of a popular leader. After some time, Mahmud Lodi, a brother of
Ibrahim Lodi, who had fought against Babur at Khanwa, reached Bihar at the invitation
of the Afghan readers. The Afghans hailed him as their ruler and mustered power under
him.
There was
1529, he left Agra for the east. Crossing the Ganga near Banaras, he faced the
combined forces of the Afghans and Nusrat Shah of Bengal at the crossing of the river
Ghagra. Although Babur crossed the river, and compelled the Bengal and the Afghan
armies to retreat, he could not win a decisive victory , and anxious about the situation
in central Asia. Babur decided to patch up an agreement with the Afghans. He put
forward a vague claim for suzerainty over Bihar, but left most of it in the hands of the
Afghan chiefs. He then returned to Agra. shortly after words, while on his way to Kabul,
Babur died near Lahore.
36
Babur's advent into India was important from various points of view. For the first time
since the downfall of the Kushan empire, Kabul and Gandhar became integral parts of
an empire comprising north India. Since these areas had always acted as staging places
for an invasion of lndia, by dominating them Babur and his successors were able to give
to lndia protection from external invasions for almost 200 years.
Economically also, the control of Kabul and Gandhar strengthened lndia's foreign trade
since these two towns were the opening points for caravans meant for China and the
Mediterranean seaports. Thus lndia could take a greater share in the great Trans Asian
trade.
Babur shattered the Power of the Lodis and of the Rajput alliance led by Rana
Sanga. Thereby, he smashed the balance of power obtaining in the area. This was a
long step towards the establishment of an all-lndia empire. However, a number of
conditions had still to be fulfilled before this could be achieved. Babur showed what a
skilled combination of artillery and cavalry could achieve. His victories led to rapid
popularization of gunpowder and artillery in lndia there by reducing the significance of
forts.
Babur introduced a new mode of warfare in lndia. Although gunpowder was
known in lndia before, by his new military methods as wall as by his personal conduct,
Babur re-established the prestige of the crown which had been eroded since the death
of Fircez Tughlag. Although Sikandar Lodi and lbrahim Lodi had tried to re-establish the
prestige of the Crown, Afghan ideas of tribal independence and equality had resulted in
only a partial success. Babur had the prestige of being a descendant of two of the most
famous warriors of Asia, Changez and Timur. None of his nobles could, therefore, claim
a status of equality with him or aspire to his throne. The challenge to his position, if
any, could come only from a Timurid prince.
37
Babur endeared himself to his Begs by his personal qualities. He was always
prepared to share the hardships with his soldiers. Once, at the height of winter, Babur
was returning to Kabul. The snow was so deep that horses would sink into it and
parties of soldiers had to trample the snow so that the horses could pass. Without
hesitation, Babur joined in the back breaking task, "At every step, the snow came up to
the waist or the chest", he says. "After a few steps, the man in front would be
exhausted, and another would take his place. When 10, 15 or 20 persons had trampled
the snow thoroughly, then alone a horse could pass over it" following Babur's example,
his begs also joined in the task.
Though an orthodox Sunni, Babur was not bigoted or led by the religious divines.
At a time when there was a bitter sectarian feud between the Shias and the Sunnis in
lran and Turan, his court was free from theological and sectarian conflicts. Though he
declared the battle against Sanga a jihad and assumed the title of Ghazi after the
victory, the reasons were clearly political. Though it was a period of war, only a few
instances can be found of destruction of temples.
Babur was deeply learned in Persian and Arabic, and is regarded as one of the
two most famous writers in the Turkish language which was his mother tongue. As a
prose writer he had no equal, and his famous memories, the Tuzak-l-Babur is
considered one of the classic of world literature. His other works include a Masnavi and
the Turkish translation of a well known Sufi work. He was in touch with the famous
poets and artists of the time and described their works in his memories. He was a keen
naturalist, and has described the flora and fauna of India in considerable detail.
Conclusion
Thus, Babur introduced a new concept of the state which was to be based on the
strength and prestige of the Crown, absence of religious and sectarian bigotry, and the
careful fostering of culture and the fine arts. He thus provided a precedent and a
direction for his successors.
38
2.2.0(B)
Introduction
Nasir ud-din- Muhammed Humayun was second Mughal Emperor.He ruled a
large territory consisting of whar is now Afganisthan , Pakisthan and parts of Northen
India .Humayun succeeded Babur in December 1530 at the young age of 23. He had to
tackle with a number of tribulations left behind by Babur. The administration had not
yet been consolidated, and the finances were precarious, The Afghans had not been
subdued, and were nursing the hope of expelling the Mughals from India. Finally there
was the Timurid legacy of partitioning the empire among all the brothers. Babur had
counseled Humayun to deal kindly with his brothers. But had not favouried of the
partitioning of the infant Mughal empire, which would have been unfortunate.
2.2.1 Immediate problem
Kabul and Qandhar were included when Hymayun ascended the throne at Agra.
There were
Qandhar were under the charge of Humayun's younger brother, Kamran. It was only
natural that they should remain in his charge. However Kamran was not satisfied with
these poverty- stricken areas. He marched on Lahore and Multan, and occupied them.
Humayun, who was busy elsewhere, and did not want to start a civil war, had little
alternative but to agree. Kamran accepted the suzerainty of Humayun, and promised to
help him when ever necessary. Kamran's action created the apprehension that the
other brothers of Humayun might also follow the same path whenever an opportuity
arose. However, the granting of the Punjab and Multan to Kamran had the advantage
that Humayun was free to devote his attention to the eastern parts without having to
bother about his western frontier.
Afgan Problem -
enemy of Humayun.
Secondly,the growing and sweep of conquests of Bahadur Shah, the ruler of Gujarat
was another challenge for him. At the outset Humayun was inclined to consider the
39
Afghan danger to be the more serious of the two. In 1532, at a place called Daurah, he
defeated the Afghan forces which had conquered Bihar and overrun Jaunpur in eastern
Uttar pradesh. After this success. Humayun besieged Chunar. This powerful fort
commanded the land and the river route between Agra and the east, and was known as
the gateway of eastern India. It had recently come in the possession of an Afghan
Sardar, Sher Khan, who had become the most powerful of the Afghan Sardars.
The seige of Chunar had gone on for four months, Then Sher Khan persuaded
Humayun to allow him to retain possession of the fort. In return, he promised to be
loyal to the Mughals and sent one of his sons to Humayun as a hostage. Humayun
accepted the offer because he was anxious to return to Agra. The rapid increase in the
power of Bahadur Shan of Gujrat, and his activities in the areas bordering Agra, had
alarmed him. He was not prepared to continue the siege of Chunar under the command
of a noble since that would have meant dividing his forces.
Bahadur Shah, who was of almost the same age of Humayun, was an able and
ambitious ruler. Ascending the throne in 1526, he had overrun and conquered Malwa.
He then turned to Rajasthan and besieged Chittor and soon reduced the Rajput
defenders. According to some later legends, Rani Karnavati, the widow of Rana Sanga,
sent a rakhi to Humayun seeking his help and Humayun gallantry responded. While this
story cannot be fully accepted, it is true that from Agra Humayun moved to Gwalior to
watch the situation. Due to the fear of Mughal intervention, Bahadur Shah patched up a
treaty with the Rana, leaving the fort in his hands after extracting a large indemnity in
cash and kind.
Humayaun has ben blamed for waisting valuable time , while Sher Khan was
steadily augumenting his power in the east. During the year and a half, Delhi, which he
named Dinpanah. He organized many grand feasts and celebrations during the period. .
lt has also been said that Humayun's inactivity was due to his habit of taking opium.
Neither of these charges has much substance. Babur continued to use oplum after he
gave up wine. Humayun ate opium occasionally in place of or in addition to wine, as did
40
many of his nobles. But neither Babur nor Humayun was an opium addict. The building
of Dinpanah was meant to impress friends and foes alike. lt could also serve as a
second capital in case Agra was threatened by Bahadur Shah who, in the meantime,
had conqured Ajmer and over run eastern Rajasthan.
Bahadur Shah offered a still grater challenge to Humayun. Not content with
harbouring the relations of lbrahim Lodi at his court, he openly welcomed some close
relations of Humayun who had escaped from prison, having been confined there after
an unsuccessful rebellion. Finally, Bahadur Shah again invaded Chittor. Simultaneously,
he supplied arms and men to Tatar Khan, a cousin of lbrahim Lodi, to invade Agra with
a force of 40,000 while diversions were to be made in , the north and the east.
Humayun easily defeated the challenge posted by Tatar Khan. The Afghan forces
melted away at the approach of the Mughals. Tatar Khan's small forces was defeated,
and {re himself was killed. Determined to end the threat from Bahadur Shah's side once
for all. Humayun now invaded Malwa. He marched forward slowly and cautiously, and
occupied a position midway between Chittor and Mandu. He thus cut of Bahadur Shah
from Malwa.
Bahadur Shah quickly compelled Chittor to capitulate, largly due to his fine
artillery which was commanded by an Ottoman master - gunner, Rumi Khan. lt has
been said that Humayun refused to help Chittor due to religious considerations.
However, Mewar was at that time passing through an internal crisis and from
Humayunls point of view, its military value as an ally was limited.
Seera of Malwa and Gujrat - ln the Struggle which followed, Humayun showed
considerable military skill, and remarkable personal valour. Bahadur Shah did not dare
to face the Mughals. He abandoned his fortified camp and fled to Mandu after spiking
his guns, but leaving behind a, his rich equipage. Humayun war hot on his heers. He
scared the rortress of Mandu with a smatiparty, Leing the fifth man to enter. Bahar,ur
shah fled from Mandu to champaner, then to Ahmadabad and finally to kathiawar.
Thus, the rich provinces of Malwa and Gujarat, as well as the large treasure hoarded by
the Gujarat rulers at Mandu and champaner, feil into the hands of Humayun.
41
Loss of Gujrat loss of Gujrat was another gross miscalculation of Humayan. After
the victory Humayun placed Gujrat under the command of his younger brother. Askari,
and then retired to Mandu which was centraily rocated and enjoyed a fine climate. The
major problem was the deep attachment of people to the Gujurati rule. Askari was in
experienced, and the Mughal nobles were mutualy separated. A series of popular
uprisings, the military actions by Bahadur shahs nobles
Bahadur shah's power, unnerved Askari. He fell back upon Champaner, but received no
help from the commander of the fort who doubted his intentions. Unwilling to face
Humayun at Mandu he decided to return to Agra. This immediately raised the fear that
he might try to disprace Humayun from Agra, or attempt to carve out a separate
empire for himself. Deciding to take no chances, Humayun abandoned Marwa and
moved after Askari byforced marches. He over took Askari in Rajasthan; the two
brothers were reconciled, and returned to Agra. Meanwhile, both Gujarat and Marwa
were lost.So Both Gujrat and Marwa were lost as quickly as they had been gained.
The Gujrat operation was not a complete failure. while it did not add to the
Mughal teritories, it destroyed forever the threat posed to the Mughals by Bahadur
Shah; Humayun was now in a position to concentrate all his resources in the struggle
against Sher Khan and the Afghans. The death of Bahadur Shah in a scuffle with the
Portuguese on board one of their ships ended whatever danger remained from the side
of Gujarat.
Sher Khan had further strengthened his position, while Humayun was absent
from Agra. He had made himself the unquestioned master of Bihar. The Afghans from
far and near had rallied round him. Though he continued to profess loyalty to the
Mughals he systematicatly planned to expel the Mughals from lndia. He was in close
touch with Bahadur shah who had helped him with heavy subsidies. These resources
enabled him to recuit and maintain a large and efficient army which incruded 1 200
elephants . Shortly after Humayun,s return to Agra, he had used this army to defeat the
Bengal King, and, compel him to pay an indemnity of 1,900,000 dinars (gold coins).
42
Besige of Chunar - After equipping a new army, Humayun marched against Sher
Khan and besieged Chunar towards the end of the year. Humayun felt it would be
dangerous to leave such a powerful fort behind, threatening his line of communications.
However the fort was strongly defended by the Afghans. Despite the best efforts by the
master - gunner, Rumi Khan, it took six months for Humayun to capture it. ln the
meanwhile, Sher Khan captured by treachery the powerful fort of Rahtas where he
could leave his family in safety. He then invaded Bengal tor a second time, and
captured Gaur, its capital.
Humayun's Political Miscalculation - Thus, Sher Khan completely outmaneuvered
Humayun. Humayun should have realized that he was in no position to offer a military
challenge to Sher Khan without more careful preparations. However he was unable to
grasp the political and military situation facing him. After his victory over Gaur, Sher
Khan made an offer to Humayun that he would surrender Bihar and pay an annual
tribute of ten lakhs of dinars it he was allowed to retain Bengal. lt is not clear how far
Sher Khan was sincere in making this offer. But Humayun was not prepared to leave
Bengal to Sher Khan. Bengal was the land of gold, rich in manufactures, and a centre
for foreign trade. Moreover, tne Xing of Bengal who had reached Humayun's camp in a
wounded condition, urged that resistance to Sher Khan was to continuing. All these
factors led Humayun to reject Sher Khan's offer and decided upon a campaign to
Bengal. Soon after, the Bengal king succumbed to his wounds. Humayun had, thus, to
undertake the campaign to Bengal all alone.
Humayun's march to Bengal was purposeless, and was to prelude to the disaster.
which overtook his army at Chausa almost a year later. Sher Khan had left Bengal and
was in south Bihar. He let Humayun advance into Bengal without opposition so that he
might disrupt Humayun's communications and bottle him up in Bengal. Arriving at Gaur,
Humayun quickly took steps to establish law and order. But this did not slove any of his
problems. His situation was made worse by the attempt of his younger brother, Hindal,
to assume the crown himself at Agra. Due to this and Sher Khan's activities, Humayun
was totally cut off from all news and supplies from Agra.
43
After a stay of three or four months at Gaur. Humayun started back for Agra,
leaving a small garrison behind, despite the rumbling of discontent in the nobility. The
rainy season, and the constant harrying attacks of the Afghans, Humayun managed to
get his army back to Chausa near Buxar. without any loss. This was a big achievement
for which Humayun deserves credit. Meanwhile, Kamran had advanced from Lahore to
quell Hindal's rebellion at Agra. Though not disloyal, Kamran made no attempt to send
reinforcements to Humayun. These might well have swung the military balance in
favour of the Mughals.
Despite these setbacks, Humayun was still confident of success against Sher
Khan. He forget that he was facing an Afghan army which was very different from the
one a year before. It had gained battle experience and confidence under the leadership
of the most skilful general the Afghans ever produced. Misled by an offer of peace from
Sher Khan, Humayun crossed to the eastern bank of the Karmnasa river, giving full
scope to the Afghan horsemen encamped there. Humayun showed not only bad political
sense, but bad generalship as well. He close his ground badly, and allowed himself to
be taken unawares.
Humayun barely escaped with his life from the battle field swimming a cross the
river with the help of a water - carrier. lmmense booty fell in Sher Khan's hands. About
7000 Mughal Soldiers and many prominent nobles were kilted.
After the defeat at Chausa (March 1539), only the fullest unity among the
Timurid Princes the fullest unity among the Rimurid princes and the nobles could have
saved the Mughals. Kamran had a battle - hardened force of 10,000 Mughals under his
command atAgra. But he was not prepared to toan them to Humayun as he had lost
confidence in Humayun's leadership. on the other hand, Humayun was not prepared to
entrust the command of the armies to Kamran, test the latter use it to assume power
himself. The suspicions between the borthers grew till kamran decided to return to
Lahore with the bulk of his army.
2.2.2 The Battle and defects of Humayun
44
The army hastily assembled by Humayun at Agra was no match against Sher
Khan. However, the battle of Kanauj (May 1540)was bitterly contested. Both the
younger brothers of Humayun, Askari and Hindal, fought valiantly but to no avail.
The battle of Kanauj decided the issue between Sher Khan and the Mughals.
Humayun now become a prince without a Kingdom, Kabul and Qandhar remaining
under Kamran. He wandered about in Sindh and its neighbouring countries for the next
two and a half years, hatching various schemes to regain his kingdom. But neither the
rulers of Sindh nor Maldeo, the powerful ruler of Marwar, was prepared to help him in
this enterprise. Worse, his own brothers turned against him, and triedto have him killed
or imprisoned. Humayun faced all these trials and tribulations with fortitude and
courage. lt was during this period that Humayun's character showed itself at its best.
Ultimately, Humayun took shelter at the court of the lranian King, and recaptured
Qandhar and Kabul with his help in 1545.
It is clear that the Major couse of Humayun's failure against Sher Khan was his
inability to understand the nature of the Afghan power. Due to the existence of large
numbers of Afghan tribes scattered over north lndia, the Afghans could always reunite
under a capable leader and pose a challenge. Without winning over the local rulers and
Zamindars to their side, the Mughals were bound to remain numerically inferior. ln the
beginning, Humayun was, on the whole, loyally led by his brother. Real differences
among them arose only after Sher Khan's victories, Some historians have unduly
exaggerated the early differences of Humayun with his brothers, and alleged faults of
character.
Though not as vigorous as Babur, Humayun showed himself to be a competent
general and Politician, till his ill-conceived Bengal campaign. ln both the battles with
Sher Khan, the letter showed himself a superion general.
Conclusion
45
was Delhi.His
birth name was Farid Khan, also known as Sher Khan.He took controle of Moghul
empire in 1540,when Humayun was elsewhere on an expedition, Sher Shah overrun the
State of Bengal and established Sur Dynesty.A brilliant strategist, Sher shah proved
himself a gifted administrator as well as able general.His reorganization of the empire
laid the foundation for the Moghul empire, notably Akbar the great, son of Humayun.
During five years rule from 1540-45, he set up new civic and military administration,
issued first Ruppee and reorganized the postal system.He further
developed
Humayuns Dina-Panah and revived the historical city of Pataliputra.He extended the
grand Trunk Road from Chittagong in Bangladesh to Kabul inAfganisthan.
administrative experience by looking after the affairs of his father's jagir. Following the
defeat and death of lbrahim Lodi and the confusion in Afghan affairs, he emerged as
one of the most important Afghan Sardars. The title of Sher Khan was given to him by
his patron for killing a tiger (Sher), soon, Sher Khan emerged as the right hand of the
ruler of Bihar, and its master in all but name. This was before the death of Babur. The
rise of Sher Khan to prominence was, thus, not sudden.
2.2.5 Conquest and Extension of empire - Sher Shah ruled the mightiest
empire which had come into existence in north lndia since the time of Muhammad bin
Tughlaq. His empire extended from Bengal to the lndus, excluding Kashmir. on the
West, he conquered Matwa, and aimost the entire Rajasthan. Malwa was then in a
weak and distracted condition and in no position to offer any resistance. But the
situation in Rajasthan when he ascended the gaddi in 1532,had rapidly brought the
whole of Western and northern Rajasthan under his control. He further expanded his
territories during Humayun's conflict with Sher Shah. With the help of the Bhatis of
Jaisalmer, he conquered Ajmer. In his career of conquest he came into conflict with the
rulers of the area, including Mewal. His latest act had been the conquest of Bikaner. In
the course of the conflict the ruler was killed after a gallant resistance. His sons,
Kalayan Das and Bhim Sought Shelter at the court of Sher Shah. Many others, including
his relation Biram Deo of Merta, whom he had dispossessed from his jagir, also repaired
to Sher Shah's court.
Thus the situation facing Rana Sanga and Babur was repeated. Various attempt
to create a large centralized state in Rajasthan under his aegis was bound to be
regarded as a threat by the ruter of Delhi and Agra. lt was believed that Maldeo had an
army of 50,000. However, there is no evidence that Maldeo coveted Delhi or Agra. Now,
as before, the bone of contention between the two was the domination of the
strategically important eastern Rajasthan.
Conquest of Rajasthan - The Rajput and Afghan forces clashed at Samel (1544)
between Ajmer and Jodhapur. Sher Shah had adopted the greatest precautions he
would throw up entrenchments to guard against a surprise attack. lt is clear that the
47
Rajputs, too, had learnt a lot about military tactics since Rana Sangas disastrous battle
with Babur. They refused to attack the strongly fortified positions of Sher Shah.
After waiting for about a month, Maldeo suddenly with drew towards. Jodhapur,
According to contemporary writers, this was due to a clever stratagem on the part of
Sher Shah. He had dropped some letters addressed to the Rajput commanders near
Matdeo's camp, in order to sow doubt in his mind about their loyalty. The strategy
worked,.Maldeo seeing his mistake when it was too late, some Rajput Sardars refused
to retreat. With a small' force of about 10,000 they vigorously attacked Sher Shah's
centre and created confusion in his army. But Sher Shah kept kool. Soon, superior
numbers and
Afghan troops.
fighting to the last man. Many Afghan soldiers perished with them
The battle of Samel sealed the destiny of Rajasthan. Sher Shah now besieged
and conquered Ajmer and Jodhpur, forcing Maldeo into the desert. He then turned
towards Mewar. The Rana in no position to resist, and sent the keys of Chittor to Sher
Shah who set up his outposts up to Mount Abu.
Thus, in a brief period of ten months, Sher Shah overran almost the entire
Rajasthan. His last campaign was against Kalinjar, a strong fort that was the key to
Bundelkhand. During the seiege, a gun burst and severely injured Sher Shah. He died
(1545) after he heard that the fort had been captured.
Sher Shah was succeeded by his second son, lslam shah, who ruled till 1553.
lslam Shah was a capable ruler and general, but most of his energies were occupied
with the rebellions raised by his brothers, and with tribal feuds among the Afghans.
These and the ever present fear of a renewed Mughal invasion prevented Islam shah
from attempting to expand his empire. His death at a young age led to a civil war
among his successors. This provided Humayun the opportunity he had been seeking for
recovering his empire in lndia. ln two hotly contested battles in 1sss, he defeated the
Afghans, and recovered Delhi and Agra.
The Sur empire may be considered in many ways as a continuation and
culmination of the Delhi Sultanate, the advent of Babur and Humayun being in the
48
nature of an inter regnum. Amongst the for most contributions of Sher Shah was his reestablishment of law and order across the length and breadth of his empire. He dealt
sternly with robbers and dacoits, and with zamindars who refused to pay land revenue
or disobeyed the orders of the government. we are told by Abbas Khan Sarwani, the
historian of Sher Shah, that the Zamindars were so cowed that none of them dared to
raise the banner of rebellion against him, or to molest the travelers passing through
their territories.
2.2.6 SHER SHAH'S ADMINISTRATION Sher ShahSuri, also known as Sher Khan or Lion King ,was one of the greatest
administratior of Medieval India.The Sher Shah Suri administration was based on the
old institution in Medieval Indian administration and
were borrowed from the past., and also the title of his officer. His military reforms
were those of Ala ud-din-Khalji and even revenue administration was not really new
and original. But he breathed a new spirit in these old institution and turned them into
institution of public service.
Sher Shah's administration was not only autocratic but also enlightened and
vigorous. He did not listen to the advice of the Ulema. He aimed at the betterment of
administration and looked into the smallest details of administration .
Sher Shah is a benevolent despot. He had both civil and military powers in his
hands and he exercised them in the interests of the people rather than for: himself.
Sher Shah was helped by four Ministers, Diwan-i-Wizarat, Diwan- i- Ariz, Diwan-iRasalat and Diwan-l-tnsha. The wazir was the head of the diwan-l-Wizarat. He was in
charge. of both the income and expenditure of the country. He also exercised a general
supervision over the ministers. The Diwan-i-Ariz was under Ariz-i-Mamalik. The latter
was incharge of the recruitment, organization and discipline of the army. He was
responsible for the payment of salaries of the army. On account of his personal interest
in the military affairs, Sher Shah interfered a lot in this department. The Diwan-l-Rasalat
49
was under a foreign Minister. His duty was to keep himself in touch with the
ambassadors and envoys. He also dealt with diplomatic correspondence. The work of
charity and endowment was also in his hands. The minister-in-charge of Diwan-i-lnshah
had to draft royal- proclamation and dispatches. He was in charge of Government
records. His duty was also to correspond with the Governors and other local officers.
ln addition to the four Departments or Ministries, there were also the Diwan-lQza and Diwan-l-Barid. The first was under the Chief Gazi. The duty of the Chief Qazi
was to supervise the administration of just
Diwan-iBarid was the intelligence
Department of the Government. It had a large number of news-writers and spies who
were scattered all over the country. There was also a high official in charge of the
royalhousehold. He enjoyed a lot of prestige on account of his nearness to the royal
family. He may be called the Lord High Steward.
There are two the theories with regard to provincial administration under Sher
Shah. According to Dr. Ganungo, the highest division of the country was Sarkar and the
provinces were the creation of Akbar, the Great According to Dr. Saran, Provinces,
existed even before Akbar and it is wrong to say that Sarkar was the highest division for
purpose of administration However, both the views do not seem to be quite correct. It
can not be denied that there were administrative divisions which
corresponded to
provinces there was no uniforminty with regard to their income and size. They were
known as lqtas and were assigned to Chiefs. Sher Shah established a new type of
provincial administration in Bengal. Bengal was divided into a number of Sarkars. A
civilian was to be at the head of the entire province and he was given a small army for
his help. His duty was supervision over the various officials of the Sarkar and also to
settle the disputes. The details of Provincial/administration are not clear and it is not
possible to say as to how its officers were appointed and what their names were.
50
Sarkar - ln the time of Sher Shah, Provinces were divided into Sarkars. The two
important officials of a Sarkar were Munsif-l-Munsifan or Munsif-in-Chief and Shiqdar-iSiqdaran or Munsif-in-Chief and Shigdar-l-shiqdaran or Shiqdar-in-Chief. The Munsif-lMunsifan was Primarily a judge and tried civil cases. He also supervised the work of
Admins. As regards the Shiqdar-l-Shiqdaran, his duty was to maintain law and order
within the Sarkar and to put down those who dared to revolt. He was also to supervise
the work of the Shiqdars of the Parganas.
Parganas - lf there were many Sarkars in province, there were many parganas in a
Sarkar. The important officials in a pargana were a Shiqdar, an Amin, a Treasurer, a
Munsif, a Hindi writer and a Persian writer for accounts.
Besides these, there were the Patwari, Chaudhari and the Muqaddam who acted
as intermediaries between the people and the Government. lt is to be noted that the
Shiqdar was a soldier. The Amin was a civilian whose duty was the assessment and
collection of land revenue. The Amin was given military help by the Shiqdar. Sher Shah
did not interfere with the work of the pargana officials. He merely tried to maintain
contact with them through the Patwari and the Chowkidar. Villages were allowed to
work with the help of their Panchayats.
Sher Shah's Army - The importance of the army to Sher Shah cannot be over
emphasized. lt was only with the help of the army that he was able to drive out
Humayun and subdue practically the while of Northern lndia. He invited Afghan Soldiers
from every parts of the country and gave them highest posts in the army. He took great
personal interest in the recruitment of the troops. In many cases he himself fixed the
emoluments of the soldiers.
Sher Shah once again introduced the System of branding horses or "Dagh" and
"Chera" or the preparation of descriptive rolls of the soldiers. Thus he was in a position
to check fraudulent musters. Sher Shah gave a lot of emphasis on the cavalry. He
armed his infantry with muskets
51
The army of Sher Shah was divided into a number of divisions. Each division was
under a commander. Strict supervision and discipline was maintained among the
soldiers for the movement of the army transport and communication were made.
Finance - Sher Shah tried to increase the State finances as much as possible.
Most of the revenue was from the center and rest from the tocal revenues. Jaziya as
well as heirless properly brought a lot of money to the Government. Taxes on salt,
customs, mines, land revenue were other sources of revenue. The main source of
income was land revenue .
Revenue Administration - lt goes to the credit of Sher Shah that he ordered an
accurate assessment of the land in the empire then the share of the Government was
fixed at one third of the produce. The payment could be both in kind and cash. The
Muqaddam were responsible for the collection of the taxes and for their services they
got a certain percentage. ln some cases the peasants were allowed to pay directly to
the treasury .
Sher Shah gave strict instruction to his officers to show leniency at the time of
assessment but strict at the time of collection of revenue. Thus, he was in a position to
check corruption. The army was given orders not to destroy the crops while moving
from one place to another. ln case, such damage was done, then the Government had
to compensate the loss .
Although, Sher Shah tried to have a good revenue system, yet it had some
inherit defects. The Government Share was one-third of the produce of three kinds of
land viz, good, middling and bad. The result was that the bad land was over - charged
and the good land was under - charged.
Justice - Where justice is concerned, sher shah was very just. No
body' could escape punishment on account of his status. The Qazi and Mir Adil Presided
over the Civil Courts. Where the Hindus were concerned, their disputes were decided by
the Panchayats. The Criminal cases, everybody was subject to the state law. The
Criminal law was very hard and punishment was very severe. During this period, the
52
object of punishment was not to reform, but to set an example for other. In the case of
government officials and other persons of high status, the punishment was more
severe. So great was the reputation of Sher Shah as adjust ruler that a merchant could
travel and sleep in the desert without fear of being robbed.
Police - The functions of the police was performed by the army. The Shiqdar-iShiqdann was to maintain peace and order in the Sarkar. ln the pargan, the same
function was performed by the Shigdar. These officers had to keep a strict watch over
thieves and robbers. Sher Shah introduced the system of local responsibility. Thus, it
was the duty of the officers-in-charge to find the culprit in every case. Most of the
historians have praised the police system of Sher Shah.
"ln Sher Shah's rule a decrepit old woman could ptace a basket full of gold
ornaments on her head and go on a journey and no their or robber would comee near
her, for fear of punishment which Sher Shah inflicted.
Currency - The currency system at the time of his accession to the throne was in a
hopeless conditions. Debasing of the coins was common. There was no fixed ratio
between the coins of various metals. Coins of various Governments were allowed to
circulate at the same time and they created a tot of confusion. Sher Shah introduced a
new coin called Dam. He also abolished the old and mixed metal currency., The names
on the coins were given in Devangari script. Gold coins were also introduced. The ratio
of exchange between the Dam and rupee was fixed at 64 to 1.
Trade - Sher Shah abolished the various duties which were levied at the frontiers of
every province. The object was to facilitate trade in the country. Only two duties were
allowed. The first duty was levied when the goods were brought into the country and
the second was levied when they were sold. All internal customs were abolished.
Means of communication - Sher Shah Sur was a great road maker. He built Four big
roads. The first road was from Sonargaon in Bengal to the lndus. This road was known
as the Sarak-l-Azam and was 1,500 Kos in length. lt can be identified with the Present
Grand Trunk Road. The Second road ran from Agra to Burhanpur. The Third
53
road ran from Agra to Jodhpur and Chittor. The fourth road was from Lahor to Multan.
Trees were planted on both sides of the. roads, Sarais were built at a distance of every
Kroh. separate provision was made for Hindus and Muslims in these Sarais. There was
also a well, a mosque and officials such as an Iman, a Muazzin .
Charity - Sher Shah was very liberal in the matter of making grants. He gave grants to
imams and holy men. He also patronized art and letters. Under the orders of Sher Shah,
the old grants were scrutinized. He ordered
examined them and sealed them himself and sent them to the Shiqdars for distribution.
Every effort was made to give grants to those who deserved it. Special grants were
given to Madrasas and mosques' Stipends were given to teachers and students. Free
kitchens were *established by the Government. lt is to be noted that in the matter of
making grants, Sher Shah was very liberal towards the Afghans'
intelligence Department - The Sarais were also used as Dak Chauki. A Daroga I
Dak Chauki was appointed by Sher Shah. A large number of news writers and news
carriers were employed and the king got daily reports regarding what was happening in
various parts of the country. The system was working so efficiently that Sher Shah
was able to get information from all parts of his dominion.
Religious policy - There is a difference of opinion regarding the religious policy
followed by Shershah. According to Dr' Oanungo' Sher shah followed a policy religious
tolerance towards the Hindus. His attitude was not contemptuous sufferance but
respectful deference". , Sri Ram Sharma differs from Qanungo. Sher Shah was very
much devoted to his own faith. He did his prayers five times a day. On more than one
occasion, Ser Shah resorted to Jehad or holy war against the Rajputs. War against
Poora Mal of Raisin was officially called a Jehad. His treatment of Maldeo of Jodhpur is
a symbol of his intolerance. Generally, Sher Shah was tolerance in matters of religious
belief. He separated politics from ethics. He was tolerant towards the Hindus.
Building - Sher Shah was responsible for the construction of the Rohtasgarn on the
Jhelum. The Puran Qila at New Delhi is::to believed to have constructed by Shershah.
The Mausaleum of Shershah' at Sahsram is one of the most beautiful buildings in lndia.
54
Conclusion
Sher Shah was a great empire builder.By sheer dint of hard work, he rose to the
position of the emperor in Northen India.He possessed an iron determination.He was
shrewd and and diplomatic in his actions.He could at once grasp the situation and take
full advantage of the same.He was not a soldier by profession but certainly he
understood how to plan campaigns to a successful conclusion.He took advantage of
the follies of humayun and drove him out of the country.
2.3.0CONSOLIDATION AND EXPANSION OF MUGHAL EMPIRE UNDER
AKBAR
Introduction
Jalaluddin Muhammed
Akbar , known as
Moghul Emperor from 1556 until his death. He was third and greast ruler of the Mughal
dynesty in India.A strong personality and successful general, Akbar gradually enlarged
the Mughal Empire to nearly all of the Indian Sub continent north of Godavari river.His
supremacy and influence, however extended
Moghul military, political cultural and economic dominance.To unify vast empire, Akbar
established a centralished
55
power of Hemu, the Prime Minister of Mohammad Shah Adali of Bengal. On hearing the
news he moved on to Delhi. Tardi Beg, the Mughal Governor, retired from that place
and the city fell into the hands of Hemu who entered it as King Vikramajit. Hemu was a
man of extraordinary personality. By Sheer dint of hard work and honesty of purpose,
he became a Chaudhry in his own circle. This brought him into contact with the
Government officials who introduced him into the court of the Sultan. Within a Short
period, Hemu won the confidence of his master who employed him in different
capacities. He proved himself to be a great administrator and general. No wonder, he
became the right hand man of Muhammad Shah Adali. He won for him battles and
conquered territories. Akbar had to deal with such a Shrewd and ambitious man.
Undoubtedly, Akbar was in a distressed Position. The expulsion of Tardi Beg
added to the fears of his followers. ln spite of all that he accepted the advice of Bairma
Khan and decided to give battle to Hemu. ln order to create an impression on his
followers, Tardi Beg was executed. The armies of Hemu and Akbar met on the historic
battlefield of Panipat in November, 1556. At that time, a severe famine was going on at
Delhi and in the neighboring territories. To being with, Hemu seemed to carry the day.
However, he was struck in the eye by an arrow and he became unconscious. This was a
turning point in the battle. The leaderless Afghan army fled away and 1 ,500 war
elephants and other booty fell into the hands of Akbar and Bairam Khan. Hemu was
captured.
The defeat of Hemu was the result of a mere accident. He himself was also
partly responsible for it. He ought to have taken the offensive against the Mughals
57
immediately after the withdrawal of Tardi Beg when his stock was very high and the
followers of Tardi Beg were clamouring for retreat to Kabul. Moreover, when Hemu
decided to send his army to the Punjab, he did not plan the same after due
deliberations. Foolishly, he sent most of his artillery along with the vanguard, The result
was that the artillery was captured by Ali Quli and that raised the morale of the Mughals
and disheartened the Afghans under Hemu. Hemu also committed the rnistake of
directing the movements of his troops in person in the battle field itself. He foolishly
exposed himself on an elephant. The result was that he was personally injured and that
decided the fate of the battle. His elephant driver also made the mistake. instead of
carrying his master to a safe place within the army of his master, he tried to carry him
away from the field of battle. This enabled Ali Quli to capture him. Hemu also made
another mistake in not providing for leadership of the army in the event of his death or
incapacitation by injury. The result was that as soon as he was removed from the field
of battle, the fate of the battle was decided.
The second battle "of Panipat was of far-reaching importance. Mughals got a
decisive victory over the Afghans. The Afghan pretensions to the sovereignty of lndia
were gone once for all. Delhi and Agra were occupied
Submission of Sikandar Sur (1557)
Sikandar Sur had retried to the Siwalik Hills and Bairam Khan sent his forces
there. The former shut himself in the hil fortress of Mankat. The fort was besieged and
the siege continued for six months. Sikandar Sur sued for peace. He surrender the fort.
He was given a Jagir and his son was otherwise provided.
ln 1557, Mahammad Shah Adli died as a result of his conflict with the ruler of
Bengal. Thus, another enemy of Akbar was disposed of without any effect on his part.
Bairam Khan or Bayram Khan
58
Bairam Khan or Bayram Khan was an important military commander, among top
generals, later commander in Chief of the Moghul army, a powerful statesman and
regent at the court of
Kandahar and later on the punjab, Delhi and Agra. He was affectionately called Khani
baba (Lord Father)
When Humayun died, Bairam Khan and Akbar were in the Punjab pursuing
Sikandar Sur who was still not crushed. Akbar a young man oI 14,was in a very difficult
situation. His followers advised him to retire to Kabul and from there attempt once
again the conquest of lndia. However, it was Bairam Khan who opposed the idea and
insisted upon giving battle to Hemu who had already occupied Agra and Delhi. The
credit of winning the Second Battle of panipat goes in a large measure to Bairam Khan.
He may be accused of the execution of Tardi Beg but expediency required such an
action to strike terror into the hearts of the traitors and cowards amongst the Mughal
officials. He was responsible for the execution of Hemu and his father.
After the Battle of Panipat, Bairma Khan, by virtue of his wisdom, age and
experience, was able to acquire substantial influence over Akbar and became virtually
the ruler of the country. (1556-60)
Bairma Khan showered favours on his friends and followers. The titles of Sultan
and Khan were given by him to his own servants and this was resented by the Muslim
nobility. The title of Panchhazari was given by him to his own favourites and the claims
of others were not considered. He adopted a discriminatory attitude in the punishment
of the offenders. He severely dealt with the servants of the royal household but let off
59
the servants of his own household. He ordered the execution of the elephant driver of
Akbar without any cause.
There was also a suspicion that Bairma Khan was plotting to place one the
throne Abdul Qasim, a son of Kamran. This was considered to be the height of
disloyalty which could not be ignored.
Bairam Khan was a Shia and his authority was resented by the Mughal nobles
who. were all Sunnis. They would like to pull him down from his high position. The
execution of Tardi Beg created the feeling that Bairam Khan would not mind disposing
of any noble, however high he may be. this created a feeling of owe and terror in their
minds and their personal safety demanded the removal of Bairma Khan.
Bairam Khan did not try to win over the nobles of the court. On the other hand, he was
thoroughly unpopular. 'His disposition was arbitrary haughty and jealous and he could
not easily tolerate the presence of possible rivals near his young rnaster.
As Akbar began to grow in years, he made up his mind to take over the
administration into his own hands Bairma Khan did not seem to like the idea and did
not behave in a proper way. This made Akbar annoyed. There were also palace
intrigues, Hamida Banu, the mother of Akbar, Maham Anaga, Adham Khan and Shahabud-Din, Governor of Delhi, hated Bairam Khan and plotted to remove him. A conspiracy
was hatched. Akbar went to Delhi to see his mother who was reported to be ill. lt was
at Delhi that Akbar wrote to Balram Khan that he had decieded to take into his own
hands the reigns of the government and, therefore, the tater should retire to Mecca. He
also offered him a Jagir for his maintenance. Although Balrma Khan was advised by his
followers to revolt, he refused to do so and submitted. Unfortunately, Pir Muhammad, a
person whom Bairma Khan and he revolted. However, he was defeated and he begged
forgiveness. That was generously given by Akbar who received him .with most princely
grace and presented him with a splendid robe of honour.Bairma Khan was allowed to
proceed to Mecca with dignity. Unfortunately, he was murdered by, an Afghan in
60
Gujarat. His camp was plundered by his young son, Abdur Rahim, was saved. Later on
he rose to the position of Khan-i-Khanan and married a daughter of prince Daniyal.
PETTICOAT GOVERNMENT (1561 -64)
After the fall of Bairma Khan in 1560, Akbar came under the influence of Maham
Anaga, his post - mother. According to Dr. Smith, Akbar threw off the Yoke of Bairma
Khan only to be brought under the "monstrous regime of unscrupulous care for the
interests of the country but nearly favoured worthless persons . This point of view is
not accepted by lndian historians. It is pointed out that if Maham Anaga had been all
powerful, she would certainly have helped her own son. Adham Khan was not favoured,
even the great influence of his mother could not save his life.
ADHAM KHAN
ln 1561 Adham Khan was sent to subdue Baz Bahadur, an Afghan, who had
captured Malwa. Adam Khan was assisted by Pir Mohammad. He was able to defeat Baz
Bahadur near Sarangpur. Unfortunately, he did not send the spoils of the conquest to
the Emperor. Adam Khan tried to take possession of Baz Bahadur's Hindu mistress
Rupmati. She Killed herself by taking poison. Akbar did not approve of the attitude of
Adam Khan in retaining the spoils. He left Agra and reached Malwa by forced marches.
He took Adham Khan by surprise. He seized the spoils and removed Adham Khan from
his office. Pir Mohammad was appointed in his place. However, Baz Bahadur took
advantage of the weak Government of Pir Mohammad and reconquered Malwa.
Abdullah Khan Uzbeg defeated him and Baz Bahadur entered the Mughal services.
Adham Khan was the victim of a miscalculation. He wrongly counted upon the
influence of his mother over Akbar. Adham Khan stabbed Shams-ud-Din, the Minister
of Akbar, in the royal palace. This was too much for Akbar. lt is stated that he rushed to
61
the spot and gave a blow to Adham Khan with his fist and knocked him down to the
ground. Adham Khan was seized and thrown headlong from the terrace of the place
where the murder had taken place, This happened in May 1562.
UZBEG REBELLION (1564-67)
Abdullah Khan Uzbeg was not of the trusted officers of Akbar. It was he who was
responsible for the conquest of Malwa from Baz Bahadur. However, he revolted against
Akbar in July,
formidable. Akbar marched against him and he was forced to retire to Gujrat.
Ultimately, he went to Jaunpur where he joined hands with another Uzbeg Chief named
Khan Zaman. The Uzbegs suspected that Akbar hated their entire race and was bent
upon reducing them to a subordinate position. The result was that many of them joined
the movement against Akbar. The trouble continued for a long time. The Mughal forces
sent against Khan Zaman were defeated in 1565. Thereupon, Akbar himself took the
field in person. Although the rebels made a show of submission, the matter did not end
their. Akbar had to suspend his operations against the Uzbegs on account of the
activities of Hakim Miza, his brother. After. dealing with his brother, Akbar crossed the
swollen Ganges in May, 1567 at night and attacked the rebets early in the morning,
There was a bitter fighting. Khan Zamanwas was killed. Bahadur Khan, his brother,
was taken prisoner and executed. lt is evident that the rebellion was crushed through
the bravery and promptitude of Akbar;
2.3.2 WAR AND CONQUESTS OF AKBER
Conquest of Akbar was largely successful and his empire extended from Kabul
in the west to Bengal in the east and from Kashmir in the north to the Vindhya in the
south.Akbar was an impwerialist.He frankly declared and desired to persue the policy
of the extension of the empire. Akbar engaged himself in wars and conquest all through
62
his life. He initiated his conquest of southern India and partially successes before he
died.He conquered the entire north india , and consolidated it ,under his
administration.
Gondwana was occupied in 1564. This state incorporated the regions of Sagar,
Darnoh, Mandal, seoni, Narmads Nalley and possibly a part of Bhopal. This state had
53 forts. Palpat Shah was its ruler. He died Ieaving behind his widow Durgavati and his
infant son Bir Naraya. Durgawati became the Regent Abdul Fazi says that Durgavati
ruled her country with wisdom and ability" She delighted in hunting and bringing down
wild animals with her own gun. Asaf Khan, the Governor of Kara or Allahabad, was
tempted by the wealth of Gondwana. Occasionally he ravaged the borders of this
Kingdorn. Rani Durgavati started negotiations with Akbar for a peaceful settlement and
when those negotiations failed, she retaliated by making forays against Bhilsa. Asaf
Khan marched against Gondwana. Durgavat! defended her territory bravely. She was
out numbered and defiated in a battle between Garh and Mandal in the modern
Jabbalpur District. Rani Durgavati was injured and she plunged a dagger inter breast
and ended her life to save herself from disgrace. Her country was devastated and a lot
of booty fell into the hands of Mughals. Bir Narayana died fighting in the defence of his
country.
WARS AGAINST RAJPUTS
War against
first MughaL Emperor who persued such a policy. Akbar was an imperialist and desired
to bring under his rule as much territory of india as was possible.There fore it was
necessary
to bring the Rajput under his suzerneity. Akbar tried to be friend the
him.Thus, he tried to be friend the Rajputs but at the same time desired to bring them
under his suzerneity.
So,some of the Rajput princes entered into matrimonial alliances with him. Akbar
married in 1562 the eldest daughter of Raja Bihar Mal of Jaipur. In 1570, he married
princesses from Bikaner and Joysalmer. ln 1584, Prince Salim was married to the
daughter of Raja Bhagwan Das" However, Mewar defied the might of Akbar.
Consequently, Akbar made up his mind to march against Chittor, in October 1567. A
regards the courses of war between Akbar and Mewar, Abdul Fazal says that Akbar's
object was to punish Rana's daring and superior pride due to his possession of big
castles and mountains.
At that time Rana Uday Sing was the king of Mewar. . He was the posthumous
child of Rana Sanga. He was an unworthy, descendant of the house of Bapa Rawal.
According to Todd, He had not one quality of a sovereign and wanting martial valour,
the common heritage of his race, he was destitute of all. Well had it been for Mewar
had the poniard fulfilled its intentions and had the annals never recovered the name of
Udaising in the calalogue of her princes.
Udai Singh had no grit to face Akbar and he retired from Chittor to the
mountains leaving the defence of the country into the hands of Jaimal. The siege of
Chittor was a long one. The Rajputs put up a stiff resistance. All the attacks of the
Mughals were repulsed. Consequently, Akbar decided to prodceed by regular sap and
mine method. Two Sabats or covered approaches to the wall were built. The intention
was to blow up a part of the fort by means of gun powder. However, one of the mines
exploded earlier and was responsible for great destruction. A new work was started
under the joint supervision of Kasim Khan and Todar Mal. A breach was made in the
wall of the fort. ln February 1568, Jaimal was supervising the repair of one of those
breaches, Akbar saw and shot him dead with his gun. The Rajput performed the Jauhar
ceremony and after killing their woman and children, they fell upon the enemy about
8,000 Rajput warriors perished. Chittor fell into the hands of the Mughals in February,
1568.
64
Next came
Haldl-Ghatl. ln 1576 and Maharana Pratap was defeated. The Mughal troops were
commanded by RaJa Man Slngh and he was assisted by Asaf Khan. The Maharana
guarded the pass of Haldi Ghat with his 3,000 horse men. The Battle of Haldi-Ghat was
a ferocious one. lt was a hand to hand fight from morning till midday. Maharana Pratap
was at his best. However he got a serious wound, and retired lnto the hills. The victors
were too exhausted to pursue him. Next day, the Mughals reached Golqunda. Thus the
Mughals got a complete victory.
The battle was remembered long after in every part of lndia. According to R.C.
Dutt, "For many years afterwards in Delhi, in South lndia, in Bengal; hoary - headed
Mughal warriors would pass the night recaling youthful soldiers with tales of Haldighat
and the amzing deeds of Pratap Singh."
lnspite of his defeat in the Battle of Haldighat, Maharana Pratap preserued in his
purpose to win back his territory from the Mughals. ln spite of the heavy odds, he was
able to recover all Mewar except Chittor, Ajmer and Mandalgarh. He had resounded
with his fame. Even Akbar himself talked highly of Pratap.
However, this great Rajput general died in 1597. He was worn out both in body
and mind. lt is stated that he was unhappy at the time of his death. Maharana pratap
feared that his sheds will give away in sumptuous dwellings, thus generating the love of
ease. Luxury with all its concomitants will ensue and the independence of Mewar will be
sacrificed. lt is stated that Amar Singh and his nobles gave a promise to Pratap that
they will carry on his mission after his death. lt was then that Pratap got satisfaction
and died in peace .
After the death of his father in 1597, Amar Singh carried on the war against the
Mughals. The latter took the offensive once again in 1599 and Raja Man Singh and
Prince Salim were invaded Mewar. Amar Singh was defeated and his country was
devastated by the Mughal troops. The war had to be stopped because Man Singh had
66
to leave for Bengal where Usman Khan had revolted. The bad health of Akbar did not
atlow him to invade Mewar once again.
The policy followed by Akbar towards the Rajputs different from the one followed
by him towards the rulers of other states in lndia. With the Rajputs, he followed a policy
of coercion for the sake of conciliation. He never attempted to annexe their states. He
was satisfied if they acknowledged his Suzerainty and entered into an alliance with him.
According to the General terms of his treaties with the Rajputs, the latter were allowed
complete internal autonomy. Akbar demanded that either the ruler or his heir apparent
must always attend the Mughal court. He also reserved to himself the right to interfere
end regulate succession in the Rajput states. By allowing the Rajputs internal autonomy
in their affairs he was able to satisfy them in their desire to rule their own states. By
keeping the ruler or the heir apparent at the Mughal court, he was able to ensure their
loyalty to the Emperor. He was also able to control successions in the state.
Other Conquest of Akbar
Conquest of Gujrat .
The affluence and maritime trade of Gujarat were sufficient attraction for Akbar
to invade that province. Muzaffar Shah ill the ruler of Gujarat. It had practically no
authority over his powerful vassals. One of his nobles called ltmad Khan invited Akbar
to interfere in the affairs of Gujarat. Akbar reached Ahmedabad in November, 1572.
Muzaffar Shah did not offer any resistance and submitted before Akbar. After making
the necessary arrangements for administrative purpose, Akbar retired to Fathepur Sikri.
Akbar had already reached his destination when he heard of 'the trouble in Gujarat
once again. He rushed back to Gujarat and it is stated that he completed a journey of
600 miles in a days. lt was a marvelous feat of endurance. He won a decisive victory in
September 1573. A few more expeditions had to be undertaken before Gujarat was
completely subdued and annexed in 1584.
67
The annexation of Gujarat was of great advantage. The Mughals got free access
to the sea. The conquest of Gujarat brought the Mughals into touch with the
Portuguese. Raja Todar Mal made his first revenue settlement in Gujarat.
Conquest of Bengal
Daud Khan was the Afghan ruler of Bengal. He was the son of Sulaiman who had
founded a new dynasty in Bengal in 1564. Sulaiman recognized the supremacy of Akbar
and continued to live on terms of friendship. Daud succeeded his father in 1572. He
was a rash and headstrong youth who had great confidence in the military resources of
Bengal. Daud annoyed Akbar by capturing the fort of Zamina.Akbar sent orders to the
Governor of Jaunpur to teach him a lesson. As the governor was not successful against
him, Akbar deputed Todar Mal to do the needful in the matter. It was due to the
ceaseless efforts of Raja Todar Mal that Bengal was added to the Mughal empire
between 1576 and 1580. When the Afghans revolted once again in favour of Hakim
Mirza, brother, Man Singh reconquered the country in 1592.
Annexation of Kabul (1585)
So long as Hakim Miza lived, Kabul remained in his possession. Akbar did nothing
to deprive him of that territory. ln 1579-80, he tried to capture the Punjab. Akbar
himself rushed from Bengal to meet the danger. However, Hakim Mirza ran away to
Kabul at the approach, or the Mughal troops. Hakim Mirza was pursued by Prince Murod
but all the same he was allowed to retain Kabul for the rest of his life. When he died in
1585, the province of Kabul! was annexed to the Mughal Empire and Man Sihgh was
appointed as its Governor. lt was a difficult task to control the Afghans. !n 1586, Raja
Blrbal was killed. The Mughl troops suffered heavy losses and retreated with great
difficulty.
Conquest of Kashmir (1586-87)
68
Yusuf Shah was the ruler of Kashmir. He committed great cruelties on his Hindu
subjects. This gave Akbar an pretext for interfering in the affairs of Kashmir. Raja
Bhagwan Das was sent with 5,000 men to conquer Kashmir. lnspite of the difficulties on
the way Raja Bhagwan Das persevered in his task and forced the ruler of Kashmir to
surrender. The son of Yusuf Shah ran away and he continued the struggle for some
time. However, he too was defeated and forced to surrender. Kashmir was annexed
and made a part of the province of Kashmir. Akbar visited Kashmir in 1589. Yusuf Shah
and his son got Jagirs and were made Mansabdars.
Conquest of Sind (1591)
Akbar restrained Bhakkar in 1574 but a large part of Southern Sind was still to be
conquered. Akbar attached great importance to the conquest of Sind because its
possession was expected to help him in the conquest of Qandhar. ln 1590, Miza Abdul
Rahirn was appointed the Governor of Multan and was instructed to take over the work
of the conquest of Sind . Miza Jani Beg was its ruler. After two battles, he surrendered.
on account of the recommendation of Abdur Rahim. Jani Beg was given a very good
treatment.
Occupation of Qandahar (1595)
Akbar was craving for capturing Qandhar. At this time the Shah of Persia was in
a great difficulty on account the activities of the Turks and Uzbegs. Akbar took
advantage of the other preoccupations of the Shah of Persia and sent an expedition to
defeat Qandbar. The won started in 1590 but was accomplished in 1595 when Qandhar
was annexed to the Mughal Empire. Certainly, the conquest of Qndhar was a masterstroke of diplomacy on the part of Akbar. Without spoiling his relations with the Shah of
Persia, Akbar was able to acquire Qandhar.
Conquest of Ahmednagar
69
After conquering the Northern lndia, Akbar diverted his attention towards the
Deccan. To begin with, he sent political missions to induce the rulers of the Deccan
states to accept his suzerainty. However, he was futile in that mission. This forced
Akbar to follow the path of war. Ahmednagar was the first to be attacked. Abdur Rahim
and Prince Murad were sent in 1595. At that time, Chand Sultana was acting as the
regent on be half of her nephew. She bravely protected the city of Ahmednagar and
behaved like a great general, lt is stated that she appeared in the ramparts of the city
in full armour and with drown sword to encourage her troops.
Prince Murad and Abur Rahim did not see eye to eye with each other and
consequently their campaigns was not a success. The Mughals made peace and
contended themselves with the attainment of Barar alone. Thus, the first operation,
against Ahmednagar ended in 1596. However, peace did not last long. There arose
internal dissensions in Ahmednagar and the result was that Chand Sultana was
murdered. Moreover, the Government of Ahmednagar did not keep its word with the
Mughal Government and tried to recover Berar. A battle was fought in February, 1596
at Ashthi and both the parties claimed victory for
of Akbar for the purpose of consultation, and was detained there. The blockade was
pustied up with great vigour but inspite of that the garrison held out. It was in January,
1601 that "the gates were opened by golden keys or in other words Akbar corrupted
the Khandesh officers by heavy payments". Thus, it was that the fort of Asirgarh fell in
the hands of the Mughals in 1601.
2.3.3 Results
The result of Akbar's conquest was that the Mughal border was pushed from the
Narmada to the upper course of the river Krishna. The newly conquered territories were
converted into three subas of Ahmednagar, Berar and Khandesh. However, the
occupation of the three Subas was merely in name. The new territory was not totally
subdued. The local officers who were connected with the former ruling dynasties
created difficulties and no successful government could be ,set up. The distance from
the North also added to the difficulties of the Mughals.
3.2.4
The administrative machinery of the Moghuls, which functioned through out the Moghul
rule, was introduced by Akbar.That is why by Moghul Administration means Akbars
administration.Akbar was not only a brave soldier, a successful leader and a great
religious reformer but also a great administrator.
Akbar inherited a composition of government based on the experience of the
Delhi Sultanate. Babur and Humayun had no time to modify the system, a new
momentum to it being given by Shershah. The system Akbar devised had some novel
features. The functions and responsibilities of the various department were carefully
71
laid down so that they did not encroach on each other and at the same time balanced
and supported each other. Thus, a system of checks and balances was devised. In this
way, Akbar infused new life into the system.
Akbar hardly made any changes in administration at the sub-district levels .The
Sarkar and the Parganas continued to function as before with some changes in the
designation of officials. An important contribution of Akbar was the development of a
Provincial administration, patterned on the Central System . Detailed rules and
regulations were devised for controlling both the provincial and district administration.
We have some idea of these from the Ain-l-Akbari of Abul Fazal. New regulations
continued to be devised, and these were later brought together as Dastur-ur-Amats or
Rule Books. Thus, an essentially bureacritic system of government progressively
emerged. However, the ruler remained the kingpin of the system.
2.3.5 CENTRAL GOVT
The Vakil
Although there were a number of departments of government in the lslamic
countries outside lndia, as well as in the Delhi Sultanate. The Central Asian and Timurid
tradition was of a single Wazir who supervised the various branches of government
including the revenue and military. Thus Babur's Wazir, Nizammuddin Khwaja, was the
political and financial head of the government. A new situation, arose with the
appointment of Bairam Khan as Vakil (guardian) of the emperor. He was all powerful,
directing policy, appointing and dismissing officials at the highest level, and controlling
both revenue and military affairs. Thus, as Vakil, Bairam Khan exercised the functions
of an alt powerful Wazir.
As Akbar took the reins of government in his hands, he devised ways and means
to ensure that such a situation did not arise again. The drastic punishment of Adham
Khan for stabbing Atka Khan signaled that Akbar would not allow the Vakil to be the
too of factional politics. Munim Khan was made the Vakil, but he ceased to be the
moving spirit of the state, and the effective head of the administration. ln 1864-65,
72
Muzaffar Khan Turbati, an lranian who had been diwan of Bairam Khan, was made
diwan of the Empire, with Todar Mal as his assistant. Gradually, the revenue and
financial affairs were separated from the office of the Vakil. After the downfall of the
Uzbeks in 1567, Munim Khan was appointed governor of Jaunpur and then of Bihar.
Thus, his role in the central government came to an end. After that the post of vakil
was not filled for seven years.
ln 1595, Miza Aziz Kaka, a favourite of Akbar
in that post till Akbar's death. Though personally very influential, he does not seem to
have played any role in administration. Thus like Munim Khan earlier, his term of office
was more for show and personal dignity than for any real power or substantial work.
As a modern historian, lbn Hasan, says:
"The power (of the Vakil) was gone but the show of power and marks of
outward distinction and prestige were retained".
The Ministries
Akbar tackled the problem of organizing the ministries. These were four in
number. The revenue department head by the Diwan or the Wazir; the military
department headed by the Mir Bakshi; the department of lmperial establishments (KarKhanas) and the royal house hold under the Mir Saman and the judicial and revenue free (inam) grants departments under the Sadar. Although four was a traditional figure
suggested by Iban Khaldun, all departments were not equal in power or importance.
Most powerful and influential, closely matched by that of the Mir Bakhshi.
Diwan
According to AbuI Fazl, the person who headed the department of income and
expenditure was the Wazir, also called Diwan. ln Practice, under Akbar, the word Diwan
or Diwan-I-Ala was used more generally. There were several reasons for this. The
Diwans of Akbar were often men of humble social backgrounds who had attracted the
emperor's attention by their knowledge and kill of revenue affairs. Although very
influential and close to the Emperor, they were generally not given high Mansabs. Also
73
Akbar was till experimenting, and sometimes appointed two or even three persons as
Diwans to discharge the duties of diwanship.
The duties of a Diwan are fairly well known. He was the lieutenant of the
emperor in financial matters, superintendent of the imperial treasurer, and checked all
accounts.
The growth of the Diwan's department began with the appointment of Muzaffar
Khan. In the ninth year (1565), during his Diwanship of eight and a half years (15631572), he carried out several important financial reforms. But Muzaffar Khan fell out of
favour because power had turned his head. He first annoyed Akbar when he abused
him while playing a game of Chaupar with him. He was exiled to Mecca, but recalled
while he was on the way, and made Vakil. He was removeed for opposing certain
financial and military reforms.
Muzaffar Khan was undoubtedly a competent Diwan who was associated with
the finance department for sixteen and a half years. During the period, some very
competent officials such as Raja Todar Mal and Khwaja Shah Mansur were inducted into
the ministry. lt was this band of expert, knowledgeable, loyal and hard working officials
who carried out the new revenue system, called the Dabsala or Ten yearly system.
This band broke up when in 1579 Muzaffar Khan was appointed governor of Bengal.
ln popular memory the Dahsala system is associated with Todar
Mal. It was
the term of Todar Mal and Shah Mansur who divided the empire into twelve provinces.
Todar Mal played on important role in carrying out further reforms in implementing the
Dahsala system. As was his usual practice, during the period Akbar also associated
others with the revenue system. Mir Fathullah Shirazi was one of these' He was a great
favourite of Akbar, and for some time, Todar Mal was asked to work under him.
All in all, Akbar assembled a team of highly skilled financial experts, and gave
them his full support and backing. None of them however, was allowed to feel that he
was indispensable. Akbar took the important step of separating the finanance from the
military and political powers and functions. So that the Wazir, instead of being a danger
to the state and source of intrigues, brought efficiency and responsibility to his task.
74
Akbar respected the Diwans for their efficiency and loyalty but he never sacrificed
discipline, and stern action was taken whenever necessary. There were at times signs
of rivalries and personal animosities concerning official rank, but the vigilance of Akbar
kept them under control and they were not allowed to effect the administration.
Mir Bakhshi
The Mir Bakhshi of the Mughals enjoyed all the powers of the Diwan- l-Arz, but
his influence was even greater since all nobles were given a military rank or Mansab
and it was the Mir Bakhshi who presented all candidates for appointment to the
emperor. He kept a register of all the mansabdars who were employed for civil and
military duties. All promotions, including appointments to all high officials of the state,
such as Vakil, Wazir, Sada passed through the Chief Bakhsi. He was not the
Commander in Chief but was the pay master - general, and could be asked to arrange
for disposition of troops in battle. The soldiers and horses of the Mansabdars were also
presented by the bakhshi after the banding of the horses and soldiers and verification
of the soldiers. Similarly, the horses and soldiers of all Mansabdars were periodically
inspected by the bakhshi.
The Mir Bakhshi presented before the King all high officers of state coming from
the provinces or leaving the court for their posting. The Mir Bakhshi was also the head
of the intelligence department, and all news - reports sent by the Waqa navis from
different provinces where put by him before the king. Thus, as lbn Hasan observers, the
Mir Bakhshi's "influence extended beyond his own department and his nearness to the
King in the darbar added much to his prestige.
Mir Saman
The Mir Saman who was in charge of the royal household, was considered to be
in charge of a department, like the Wazir and the Mir Bakhshi. Neither the word Mir
75
Saman or Khan - l- Saman was used in Akbar's time but came in use under Jahangir
and Shah Jahan. Under Akbar, it seems that the office of the Mir Saman had not
emerged. We do however, hear of the Diwan-l-Bayutal who was in charge of the
Karkhanas. The Karkhanas included factories and stores maintained by the central
government. They deals with every article from precious stones, pearls to swords and
daggers guns and artillery. The diwan-l- boyutat maintained horses and elephants for
the army, beats burden such as camels, mules etc. for baggage and other animals
(elephants, horses) for the royal hunt. Thus, the Diwan-l-bayutat was an important
officer who dealt with the household, the darbar and the army, and was close to the
king.
Sadr - The Sadar or Sdar - us - Sdur was the head of the ulema and was
considered to be the Chief advisor of the King regarding the enforcement and
interpretation of Sharia or the holy law. He was also called the Qazi-ul-Quzzat, or head
of the judiciary and appointed Qazis all over the empire. However, the king himself was
the final court of appeal, and hear cases with the help of the mufte.
A major responsibility of the Sadar was to award subsistence allowances
(madadd-l-maash) to deserving scholars, divines and weaker sections such as women
of noble families. This was, in fact, a tremendous power of patronage which some of
the Sadrs used for personal enrichment. The most powerful of sadrs used for personal
enrichment. The most powerful of the Sadrs under Akbar was Shaikh Abdun Nabi.
Akbar had great respect for Shaikh Abdun Nabi because of his learning. But
Akbar became disqusted with him when bribery, mismanagement an Saikh was also
found to be narrow and bigoted and he lost Akbar's sympathy when he executed a
prominent brahmin of Mothura a on change of blasphemy. He was exiled to Mecca in
1579. Thereafter, Akbar carried out reforms separating Jama or revenue free grant
lands from Khalisa, and consdidated them so that the grantees were not harassed by
being given scattered lands in different parts.
Akbar was keen that deserving Hindu scholars and religious men should also
benefit from these grants. He therefore appointed as Chief Sadr men who had more
76
tolerant views, and ought to be at peace with every party" (Akbar Nama). Grants to the
Hindu holy men had been unknown earlier but suh grants became more widespread
under Akbar due to this policy. Hindu Rajas and Zamindars continued to make such
grants to Hindu holymen, temples etc.
2.3.6 Provincial government
Under the Delhi sultanate there was no clear division of the empire in to
provinces with definite boundaries.Akbar inherited this system and continued it till 1580.
ln 1580 the empire which by then had extended to include Gujarat, Bihar and Bengal,
was divided into twelve Subahs or Provinces. The head of administration in the Subah
was called Sipahsalar or commander though later the word Subahdar began to be used.
The head of the Subah or Governor, was assisted by a Diwan a bakhshi, a Sdar.a.Qazi,
a amil all for justice - a Kotwal a Morbahr or Superintendent of rivers and ports and a
waqia - navis or news writer. These officers were subordinate to the governor but were
not appointed by him. They were appointed directly by the emperor and were
answerable to him, and to the head of their ministry at the center. Thus the Principle of
checks and balances was carried to the provincial government.
ln 1586 as an experimental measure, Akbar decided to appoint two Governors in
very province. According to Abul Fazal, this step was taken because if one governor had
to be absent for duty at court, or fell ill, the administration would continue unhampered.
Perhaps, a real purpose was to limit the power of the Governor. But it led to needless
hostility and had to be abandoned.
The Ain-l-Akbari gives the geographical boundaries of the Subahs along with a
brief account of the climate. The provinces are divided into Sarkars and Parganas, and
the assessed income of each Sarkar, the cases of the Zamindars, and the military forces
- cavalry infantry, elephants at their disposal is also given. This was so because the
autonomous rajas were not listed separately as states, but included in the Subahs as
77
Sarkars and pargans. Thus Mewar was included in Sarkars Chittor, Kota !s mentioned as
a pargana of Sarkar Ranthambar, while Jalpur (Amber) was a pargana of Sarkar Ajmer.
There was a considerable range in the size, assessed income etc. of the Subahs. With
Bengal having twenty - four Sarkars with an assessed income (Jama) of about one and
a half crore rupees and, one the other end, Multan with three Sarkars with an assessed
Income of only about thirty seven lakh rupees. Other provinces fell in between these
two extremes.
The Provincial Governors have been called vice-regents of the emperor. The
governor wvas the commander of the provincial army, and was responsible for law and
order, the general administration as well the welfare and prosperity of the people of the
Subahs. He was to help the diwan in collecting the land revenue by controlling and, if
necessary, punishing the recalcitrant or rebellious Zamindars. He was entrusted with
the administration of criminal justice, but was to use the utmost deliberation before
inflicting the capital punishment to anyone. He was asked to under take tours of the
Province and to keep himself in touch with all important happening in his province
through trusted spies and news - writers. It is significant that the Governor was also
instructed not to "interfere in anyone's creed". There was no definite term for a
governor, but Governors were connstantly transferred.
The Diwan was the second most important officer in the Subah. Although, at
first, the Governors were permitted to appoint the Diwans to assist them, from 1595 the
Diwans began to appointed centrally, possibly on the recommendation of the Chief
Diwan, hence forth, the Diwan ceased to be a Subordinate of the governor, but a
colleague, though the governor remained the head of the administration. The Provincial
Diwan had to send fortnightly reports to the central diwan on financial matters and the
cash balance with him. He was responsible for collection of the land revenue and other
taxes, and for their auditing and accounting. A principal! duty of the Diwan was to
extend and improve cultivation with the help of Amils in the Sarkars. He also supervised
the lands given for Charitable purposes.
78
The Bakhshi also acted as the head of the intelligence service, and this
sometimes brought him into conflict with the Governor, if he sent complaints against his
conduct to the court. He recommended grants to religious men and was also head of
the judiciary department. Akbar was not satisfied with the work of the Qazis and had
appointed a Mir Adl as a judicial officer in the provinces. The qazi to act as his assistant.
The Kotwal was in charge of law and order in the city. He also looked after the
general amenities in the city, such as weights and measures, as also control of
gombling houses and houses of prostitution etc.
The point to note is that the governor of the province was the head of a team,
and it needed tack and skill on his part to deal with officers each of whom was zealous
of his privileges and had direct access to the center. But these checks and balances
could only operate when there was a capable sovereign at the center. Thus Akbar tried
to establish a provincial system of government which acted as a link to the local
administrative units, and as a transmission belt for information to the center.
2.3.7 District and local government
For purposes of administration the
Pargana. Each Sarkar was headed by a Fujdar who was responsible tor the assessment
and collection of land revenue. The faujdar may be considered the man on whose
shoulders rested the day to day functioning of administration. The qazi was responsible
for criminal justice, as also civil law among .Muslims, or when, one of the party to a
dispute was a Muslim.
Each Sarkar was divided into a number of parganas. Each Pargana had a Shiqdar
for general administration, an Amil for assessment and collection of land revenue, a
treasurer, a Qanungo who dermined the Pargana and village boundaries and kept the
local revenue records and clerks or Karkuns.
Conclusion
79
Since the ruler was the center of government his attitude towards public
business set a standard and norm. These in turn, were widely emulated by the nobles.
Akbar set the standard of appearing three times every day for state business. The first
appearance was called Jharoka darshan was inovation of Akbar and designed to
establish a personal bond between ruler and his subjects. The second appearance was
in the afternoon when Akbar reviewed the condition of transport maintained by the
state. Confidential business of the state was the conducted in the evening .It will be
soon that the Emperor tried to see a cross - section of the people, and to be accessible
to them.
Akbars significant contribution in the functioning of the government was to
establish a routine which was strictly followed by his successors till the time of Bhadur
Shah l, and of bringing the monarchy closer and more accessible to the people in
various ways.
2.3.0 Establishment of Jagir and Mansab Systern
Introduction
The Mughal army was based on Mansabdari system. Although the signs of Mansabdari
system were visible during the Sultanate period but Akbar gave it a scientific structure.
Normally mansab means rank and honour, so the post of Mansab can be said to be of a
government officer who was paid salary or jagir according to his Mansab by the imperial
treasury. lrwin writes, "Mansabdari was the measure of status under the Mughal
government which determined a Mansabdar's rank, his salary and his office in the Royal
court'. ." The Mansabs were from 10 to 10,000 in the beginning but later they were
enhanced up to 50,000. Generally Mansabs above 5000 were reserved for the princes
but during the reign to Jahangir and Shahjahan the Mansabs of 7,000 and 8,000 were
awarded to the nobles. The members of the royal family were awarded Mansabs upto
40,000 and 50,000.
80
permanently .and changes were introduced from time to time: The Mansabdar led a
luxurious life because even after meeting the expenditure, they saved a lot of money
from the amount they received from the imperial treasury. A Mansabdar was paid a
monthly salary of rupees 100,82.5 and 75 to the first, second and third category,
respectively. A Mansabdar of each class was required to keep specified number of
horses for which he was paid 44 rupees per month. The Soldiers of the Mansabdars,
being part of royal army, received their salary in cash from the royal treasury and not
from the Mansabdars, as has been pointed out by some of the scholars. At the same
time, it is evident that some of the corrupt and dishonest Mansabdars did not maintain
the exact number of soldiers and received salaries according to their fictitious pay rolls.
Thus, they embezzled a great part of imperial treasure for their own benefit and
luxuries.
Ain-l-Akbari refers that an ordinary soldier was paid 240 to 500 Dams per month.
Dakhili troopers who were supplied horses and weapon from the state received 160
dams in the beginning. A matchlockman or Bandukchi was paid 260 dams to 300 dams.
The Amirs or grandees were paid quite handsome salaries 80 that they could remain
faithful to the empire. A Mansabdar of 500 received about 2500, 2300 and 2100 Darns
per month according to his first, second or third class category respectively. The
Mansabdars led a luxurious life, maintained big harems, and kept a number of domestic
servants as they were earning a lot.
Different categories of Soldiers
Besides the Mansabdars and their soldiers there were some more categories of
soldiers who served the Mughal empire earnestly.
Ahadi Soldiers
They were the personal soldiers of the emperor. Diwan and Bakhshi looked after
their appointment, training and discipline an behalf of the emperor. They were nicely
82
paid from the imperial treasury. The ordinary horseman was given as salary only rupees
twelve to fifteen per month but an Ahadi was paid up to rupees five hundred per
month. lt was not decided as to how much Ahadis a King would recuit. As they were
completely loyal to the emperor, Akbar enhanced their number up to twelve thousand.
Dakhili Soldiers
They were also recruited on behalf of the emperor but kept in the charge of
Mansabdars and formed a part or Mughal army.Mughal emperors had a powerful
permanent army. According to Blockmann, the army of Akbar consisted of 25,000
soldiers but it seems to be a hypothesis and the truth must be very far from it. We
know that the army of Jahangir and Shahjahan numbered about three Lakh, hence the
army of Akbar could never be less than that of his successors. Actually if we count the
entire army of the Mughals including the army of Mansabdars and the feudatories it
would be in no way less than about forty four lakh. The following were the Significant
units of the Mughal army which worked effectively and won laurels for the Mughal
emperors by extending their territory.
Cavalry -During the Mughal period, the cavalry was divided into two parts : (i)
Bargis, and (ii) Silehdar.
The Bargirs were the soldiers who received their arms entry dresses from the
state and the Siledars were those who possessed their own weapons and horses. The
horses used by the cavalry belonged to Turki, Tazi, Arbi, Farsi, Muzanna,ans yabu. As
the cavalry was the best part of the army, considerable attention was paid to it.
lnfantry - All the Mughal emperors paid attention towards the proper upkeep of
the infantry. The foot soldiers were mainly divided into two categories, i.e., Blnduqchi
(riflemen) and Shamshirbaz (swordmen) Besides rifle and sword, the soldiers were
expert in handling bows and arrows and javelins etc. Apart from the soldiers all workers
who were attached with the army, such as slaves and water carriers, were also included
in the infantry.
Elephants - The Mughal rulers also maintained a number of war
83
elephants. During the reign of Akbar, they numbered about one thousand but their
number was about fifty thousand in the entire Mughal empire. Elephants were used for
multifarious purposes. Besides fighting, these elephants were engaged as goods
carriers also,
Artillery - Artillery was equally a significant part of the Mughal army. Babur
was the first Mughal ruler who made use of gunpowder' His successors strengthened
artillery later on. Min-l-Atish was the officer in charge of this branch. During the reign
of Akbar the artillery was improved a lot. Besides small guns he also got the big guns
prepared. The small guns could be carried on elephants or camels and used very
effectively on the battlefield as their direction could be changed easily and immediately
but the guns were either wheeled or carried on big wooden platforms. Dr. R.p. Tripathi
has aptly praised the artillery of Akbar, "Excepting the Turkish artillery, Akbar's was
second to none in Asia, for in Akbar's time it had reached the high point of efficiency".
About 12,000 mounted musketeers and a great number of matchlockmen were
including in his artillery which made it all the more effective during the war.
Navy - The Mughals did not pay attention to the development of naval force
before Akbar established his control over Gujrat. ln the meantime the Portuguese
established their supremacy over the lndian seas and they did not see eye to eye with
those who devoted themselves to the progress of navy. Akbar and his successors had
strong land forces. They maintained only some small fleets of boats which in no way
could be said to be a powerful navy. The officer in charge of these boats was known as
Mir Bahr. His chief function was to prepare ferries and bridges for the passage of the
troops and local in habitants. No doubt Akbar and his officers were capable of
maintaining a powerful navy on the European style but they did not suspect any danger
from the sea
powerful navy. The task of the safety of the western coast was handed over to the
sides of Janjira by the Mughals only because they did not maintain an efficient navy.
During the reign of Akbar there was a department of Dag Mahali whose Chief
function was to maintain a Huliya register for each soldier. He also performed the duty
84
of branding the horses and elephants' Besides the mark of Mansabdar, the animal also
had a special mark of the emperor. It[was properly done to avoid cheating by the
Mansabdar's. The emperor used to inspect the army of each Mansabdar annually or
once after three Years.
8,8.11 Merits and Demerits of Mansabdari System Merits - Mansabdari system was a progressive system adopted by Akbar for the
reorganization of the army. No other lndian ruler had ever thought and planned on such
lines as followed by Akbar. He tried to establish a link between chieftainship and
feudalism through Mansabdari. Some of the Mansabdars were given liberty to recruit
their soldiers from their own tribe and religion but they had to owe unconditional
allegiance to the central government. The system of Mansabdari freed the emperor
from the grips of the feudat lords as it put an end to the Jagirdari system. The post of a
Mansabdar was not hereditary, hence every new Mansabdar received his Mansab from
the emperor. His promotion and demotion also depended on the mercy of the emperor,
hence he had to be faithful and devoted to the emperor, failing which he was deprived
of all the privileges by the Emperor. It lessened the chances of revolt in the empire.
Akbar also sought the help of his hereditary martial elements and brave citizens to join
the royal army and he, thus, contributed to the political unification of the country.
Demerits - As most of the Mansabdars were foreigners they did not have any love
towards Indian empire, hence Akbar failed to organize a national army with the help of
these Mansabdars. Moreover, as the soldiers were recruited by the Mansabdars and
they received their salary and promotion from the Mansabdars, they remained loyal to
their masters instead of the Mughal emperors.
The Central army remained weak as the soldiers of the Mansabdars had different
training of arms and discipline with their Mansabdars. They failed to coordinate with the
royal army at the time of peril. As no systematic training was imparted to the soldiers
by the central government before waging wars, their fitness remained always in doubt
and their weapons and standards remained poles apart from one another.
85
With the passage of time the Mughal army began to deteriorate, the high officers
of the army began to take their wives and concubines with them to the battlefield which
affected the power and speed of the army otherwise.
The Mansabdari system created some malpractices in the army system. As the
solders received their salaries through Mansabdars, they embezzled a lot of amount in
trasaction. Moreover, these Mansabdars horses and thus they amassed a huge amount.
Conclusion
However, Historian praise the army organization of Akbar. It was ever superior
to that of Babur which had been
inferior to the Ottoman Army
Europe. His successors failed to follow in his fortoteps and the army structure of Akbar
collapsed under the regime of his successors.
2.4 .0 AKBAR'S RAJPUT POLICY
Introduction
Babur and Humayun had strained relation with Rajputs.It was only Akbar who rightly
professed that the Rajput were valiant and courageous people who could not be easily
crushed by warfare. He there fore set him self to the task of winning over Rajputs.He
enterd in to matrimonial alliance with the Rajputs. He started giving high positions to
the Rajputs to the Rajput in Mughal service and treated them at par with Mughal
nobility.He granted freedom of worship and conscience to the Rajputs.Those who allied
themselves to Akbar were largely left in charge of their kingdoms. Where conciliation
failed he restored to warfare. His policy of carrot and stick won over the Rajput and
they baceme a part and parcel of Moghul empire.
86
Before to the establishment of Muslim rule, the Raiputs were ruling over india.
Undoubtedly, the Turks and Afghan established their control over a large part of lndia
but the Rajputs continued to oppose the Muslims for they, still aspired to establish a
Hindu Empire in lndia. Babur the great grandfather of Akbar, had to wage a bloody war
against the Rajput's in order to establish his supremacy in lndia. lt proves that their
spirit of independence was still powerful and more than three hundred years of reign of
Muslims could not curb their spirit of independence. The early two emperors, Babur and
Humayun, could not adopt a specific policy against the Raiputs due to lack of time or
their instable position but Akbar, being a great politician and farsighted ruler directed
his attention towards the Rajputs. He knew that without the active support and
cooperation of the Raiputs, it would not be possible for any one to establish a
permanent empire in lndia'
The success of Akbar in lndia did not lie only on his military power but on his
tolerant policies. Prior to Akbar the rulers who attained victories against any one,
besides plundering, insulted and assassinated the vanquished; but Akbar gave up his
policy' He decided to treat Hindus and Muslims similarly and adopted the policy of
peace and consolation. He refused to consider the Hindus menial because they
worshipped idols. No doubt he fought some fierce battles against the Rajputs but as
soon as they surrendered or accepted the suzeraintly of the Mughal Empire, he gladly
established cordial relations with them and befriended almost all the vanquished Rajput
rulers.
2.4.1 Causes of Liberal Rajput Policy
The liberal Rajput policy of Akbar was motivated by some farsighted political
principles, precepts of history, , desire for establishing a stable Mughal empire and
some fine humanly virtue.
1. The Rajputs were the political and military leaders of the Hindus and they held
significant place in history. Akbar just after this accession to the throne realized
87
that it would not be possible for any one to establish a permanent rule over lndia
or to reign peacefully without the active support of Rajputs. ln fact, trulers of
Delhi Sultanate, such as Balban, Alauddin Khalji and Muhammad Bin Tughlug
failed in establishing a permanent Muslim empire because they did not care for
the Rajput's cooperation.
2. Akbar had very well understood the Rajput character . The Rajput's were true to
their words and were capable of handling the sword very skillfully. They
preferred death against dishonour. They were not cheats or treacherous. Their
standard of morality was quite high and they used to fight on the battlefield
honestly and such chivalrous and courageous persons cannot be defeated by
power or fear of death. No alien ruler could have a sound sleep after having
spoiled his relations with the Rajputs. Hence Akbar thought it proper to make
friendly relations with the brave Rajputs instead of making them of foe of the
empire.
3. Akbar wanted to depend on the lndian people instead of the foreigners. The
early Muslim rulers used soldiers of central Asia. They neither had sympathy
towards the people of lndia nor had they faith in Mughal empire, hence Akbar
adopted a liberal view towards the Rjaputs to get rid of them.
4 . The revolts of the Afghans and the Mirazas which took place during the regime of
Akbar atso forced him to prepare a parallel group to curb the power of his rivals.
5. Akbar was an imperialist ruler. He knew it well that either the Rajputs should be
defeated completely or they should be friended. The conflict against the Rajputs would
not serve the purpose, hence he adopted a liberal policy towards the Rajputs.
6. The centers of Mughal power, Delhi and Agra, were quite near to Rajputana and it
would have been very difficult for Akbar to rule peacefully, so long as the powerful
Rajput rulers were having their existence near Delhi. So instead of adopting the bloody
88
policy towards the Rajputs, Akbar resorted to a policy of friendship and cooperation
with them.
2.4.2 Chief aims of the Rajput Policy of Akbar
1. Every effort should be made to establish cordial relations with the Rajputs.
2. The Rajput Kings who accepted the supremacy of the Mughal empire, should be
honoured. They should also be appointed on high posts in the Mughal empire so that
they might be made obedient to the Mughal Empire.
3. Those Rajput Kings who intended to measure swords with the Mughals, should be
brought to subordination with the help of military power and in case they accepted the
supremacy, they should be pardoned and honoured by giving suitable respect.
4. Those Rajput Kings who considered the Mughal empire their enemy throughout the
life, should be crushed mercilessly.
5. The royal authorities should not make any interference in the customs, social
traditions and rituals of the Rajputs and they should pay proper regards to the pride
and prestige of the Rajputs.
6. The Mughal Emperor should himself behave in such a way as to be able to mix ,up
with the Rajputs so that they begin to consider him their well-wisher and guardian. The
Emperor also stressed upon establishing matrimonial alliances with the Rajput rulers.
7 . He wanted to curb the power of the rival Muslim nobles with the help of the Rajputs.
2.4.3 Implementation of Rajput Policy and its consequences
Akbar being a great politician and shrewd diplomat adopted a very political and
farsighted policy towards the Rajputs and extended his territory to a great extent. He
made the brave Rajputs his partner in the establishment of a national policy. As a
result, the Rajput rulers of Ajmer, Bikaner, Jaisalmer gave their daughters to the
Mughal Emperor in marriage and earned his favour. After getting respectable and high
posts in the service of the empire and expressed their faithfulness.
89
Soon Akbar realized that his Rajput Commanders were move confidants than the
Muslim ones. As Raja Bhagwan Das and Raja Man Singh proved to be very faithful and
devoted to the Emperior, it gave new vigour to the Mughal Empirer and he adopted
similar measures in the case of other Rajput rulers. He knew it well that it similar
opportunities were provided to the Rajputs as to the Muslim officials, they would be
able to rule in their respective territory under the Suzerainty of the Mughal Emperor
with great success. His liberal attitude inspired the other Rajputs to establish cordial
relations with Akbar and they were employed as Mansabdars in the Mughal court.
But these achievements were gained after a lot of turmoil, and after waging
various wars. The fall of Marwar in A.D. 1562, the conquest of Ranthambhor in A.D.
1568 and surrender of Marwar, Bikaner and Jaisalmer wer incidents which inspired the
other Rajputs to maintain good relations with Akbar.
Mewar was the only state which did not submit before the mighty Mughal
empire. Rana Udai Singh, the Sisodiya Rajput, did not surrender before the Mughals
due to their respectable position among the Rajputs. Akbar was very much annoyed
with Rana Udai Singh as he had given refuge to some enemies of the Mughal empire
such as Baz Bahadur and the rebel Mrzas. No doubt the Rajputs had to suffer a lot in
this inequal struggle against the Mughals. Rana Udai Singh retired in the forests and his
son and successor Rana Pratap had to face innumerable difficulties .But they continued
to fight against the mighty Mughal empire as they had undoubted bravery and neverending spirit for independence. Mewar fought very gloriously but she could not control
the imperialist design of Akbar. The death of Rana Pratap after the battle of Haldighat
and the accession of Rana Amar Singh gave further opportunity to the Mughal Emperor
to establish control over Mewar in the reign of Jahangir, the son and successor of
Akbar.
The Rajput policy of Akbar proved completely a success. As he did not
differentiate between his Hindu and Muslim subjects, removed Jaziya and declared Suk
90
Kul, he could gain an exalted place in the eyes of his Hindu and Rajput subjects, and
thus he consolidated the Mughal empire.
Influenced by his Hindu queens Akbar began to have faith in the Hindu religion
and started listening to the preachings of Hindu saints and philosophers. The marriage
alliance between Hindus and Muslims also mitigated the enmity between the two rival
communities. Raja Bhagwan Das, Raja Birbal and Raja Todarmal were his most intimate
friends. His liberal policy enabled him to establish his empire firmly and to maintain law
and order in the country.
He appointed the Rajput Mansabdars in distant places for the safety of the
empire and thus removed all the possibilities of impending revolts. Akbar also new it
well that iron cuts iron, So he took help of the Rajputs who were his close friends
against the Rajput who were not prepared to bow down before him.
Akbar's liberal Rajput policy also helped in the progress and development of
Hindu - Muslim culture. We find an excellent mixture of Hindu - Muslim ideas in
architecture, painting, music, literature etc. The impact of Rajput architecture is clearly
visible on the buildings of Akbar, and in most of the amalgamation of Hidnu and Muslim
styles is beautifully represented.
Conclusion
The broadminded Rajput policy of Akbar enabled the Mughal empire to reach the
pinnacle of Progress in all spheres. The establishment of peace accelerated the
development in trade and commerce which helped a lot in the making of the nation.
The cooperation of the Rajputs strengthened the military power of the Mughal empire.
Akbar was the Mughal ruler who treated the Rajputs at par with the rest of the nobility
and the highest posts were opened to them. The Rajput kings were assured of their
heareditary claims, it proved to be a solid gain to the weaker state. The Rajputs were
also granted freedom of worship and faith. Thus, the liberal Rajput policy of Akbar
proved quite beneficial in the interest of the Mughal empire.
EVOLUTION OF RELIGIOUS AND SOCIAL OUTLOOK
91
was tolerant
one.Though staunch Sunni, Personally, Babur and Humayun were tolerant. Akbars
policy was positively motivated towards achiving the cultural unity of India.Akbar was
liberal in his policy.He abolished piligrim tax and jiziya in 1563 and 1564 respectively.
Akbars religious view underwent a process of evolution. Though brought up as
an orthodox Sunni Muslim , he was greatly influenced by mysticism of sunni doctrines
specially when he came in contact with two brilliant persons Faizi and Abul Fazal, who
were Sufi.He invited learned professors of various religion to his Ibadat- Khanna ,the
hall of worship
such features of other religions as did not come into inflict with lslam, Akbar did not
respect these limits.
He felt that every faith had something of truth to offer but that all were false
when they denied each others sincerity of purpose. He believed that the denial of the
freedom of religion to non-Muslims was the negation of disservice to God. He therefore
favoured complete tolerance of belief and rejected the Muslim ideal of one scripture and
one brother hood since it depend religious strife. Akbar's religious views thus were
radically at odd with orthox Muslim opinion. Conforming to his views, he abolished the
practice of en-slavement of the Hindu prisoners of war on seeking their convension to
lslam, as well as the hated imposts - pilgrim and jaziya taxes which the Hindus had
92
been paying for long and allowed complete religious freedom to his Rajput spouses in
the Mughal palace. All this happened in the yearA.D. 1562-64when he was barely 20 or
22years old. He thus broke away from the orthodox tradition of intolerance extended to
the Hindus. Such near revolutionary measures were not based on political expendiency.
His own religious temperament was the chief reason for such enlightened steps.
Significantly, by A.D. 1562 Akbar was free from his regent Bairam Khan's or his harem's
tutelage and by that time Abul Fazl and Faizi (two of Akbar's close friends) had not
been introduced to him. The decision to put an end to the traditional policy of denying
the Hindus absolute religious freedom was independently his and it beyond doubt
establishes that Akabar possessed a rare catholicity and natural liberalism.
Political Considerations
Political considerations did not prompt him to internalize liberal outlook. It was a
natural growth. Rather his catholicity and natural liberatism broadened his political
vision and sagacity adequate enough as to realize that religious strife and discrimination
made for political and social disintegration.
Akbar's Concept of Monarcly
ln addition to his being intrinsically liberal, Akbar had a impressive conception of
monarchy. He sincerely believed that Kingship is a gift of God and that he had a divine
mission of expanding his Kingdom and promting the well-being of his subjects. Clearly
Akbar was imperial by nature and therefore had no urge for power and to create an all.
lndia empire. Realistically he analyzed that this implied the establishment of a common
citizenship on the basis of complete toleration to the non- Muslims and their association
in the administration on equal terms with the Muslims. Akbar's religious view and
liberalism were absolutely in conformity with this. He therefore compounded his
catholicity and liberalism with his concept of monarchy and imperial instincts to fully
93
conciliate the Hindus in general and the Rajputs in particular. Akbar was greatly
successful in doing this. He achieved (i.e. a vast and consolidated empire) which was
impossible for the Sultans of Delhi to achieve, because they lacked that inherent
catholicity or broadmindedness which Akbar had and they could not adopt liberal
principles even as political expendients, though they very much pursued imperialistic
policies.
Sole Authority in the field of Religion
By A.D. 1579 Akbar felt that he would have sole authority to take any decisions,
therefore, he secured an authority (Mahazar) from Muslim theologians to invest him
with the power to .adopt any one of the conflicting opinions of Muslims jurists on any
issues. The Mahazar did not make him in falliable, but it did give that power to adopt
any one of the conflicting opinions of Muslims Jurists on any issues. The Mahazar did
not make him infalliable, but it did give that power to Akbar which had hitherto been
the special privilege of the Ulema. In . 1582 AD Akbar, while referring to the discord
among the diverse creeds, proclaimed his new order, Din-l-llahi, emphasizing the
necessity of bringing ,them all into one in such fashion that they should be both 'one'
and 'all with the great advantage of not losing what is good in any one religion while
gaining whatever is better in another. Din-i-llahi was no new religion. Being liberal, he
never tried to coerce or induce his subjects or friends to adopt Din-i-llahi, he was rather
persuasive.
Because of his new socio-religious outlook, Akbar is given a unique place in the
History of lndia. So V A smith writes "Akbar was a born king of, men, with a rightful
claim to be one of the mightest sovereign, a known to history. That extra ordinary
natural gifts, his original socio- reigious outlook and his magnificent achievements."
94
Among all the Muslim Kings who ruled over lndia Akbar was most liberal
exponent of religious tolerance. Rising above the prejudies of his age he followed, a
very tolerart golicy. There, were certain factors that determined his policy.
Factor Responsible for his Liberalism -The influence of his heredity endowed him
with those qualities of head and heart that prepared him to receive the impress of his
environments and reflect it in the best possible way, The Timurids besides their lust for
blood and passion for warfare, proved equally varacious admirers of art and literature
that rid them of the narrow religious orthodoxy. Babur and Humayun, while acquiescing
to the tenents of lslam, were never orthodox. Moreover, Akbar's mother besides being a
daughter of the Shia house, was herself a persion Scholar. Akbar, therefore, born of a
'Sunni Shia Wedlock" early inculcated the necessity of tolerance, a quality that was
equally impressed upon his mind by Abdul Latif, his tutor and the sulisaints who had
sought shelter at the Kabul court. As a Sultan, his marriage with the Rajput Princesses
and his close association with Hindus and the Rajput noblemen (Like Todarmal, Birbal
and Raja Man Singh) and thinkers, further liberalized his thoughts and policies.
Akbar's religious tolerance was also an outcome of political necessity. ln order to
consolidate the state, he conciliated the Rajputs and attempted to abolish the glaring
distinction between the Hindus and Muslims by abolishing the pilgrimage tax and the
Jeziya and encouraging the Hindus to growingly associate with the administration.
Besides the temporal motives, Akbar's inquisitive mind harboured an eager
craving to discern 'the truth of life and the universe'. As in other parts of the world, the
16th century was a period of religious and social revival in lndia. The ground had
already been prepared in the preceding two centuries by the various religious and social
reformers like Guru Nanak and Chaitanya who had reawakened in the country
appreciation of the necessity of tolerance and reform. They had prepared the way for
95
the integration and higher synthesis of all the dynamic and progressive forces. Akbar,
"intelligent to an uncommon degree, with a mind alert and inquisitive, was best fitted
by birth, upbringing and association to feel most keenly those hankerings and that
spiritual unrest which distinguished the century in which he lived. He was not only the
child of his century, he was its best replica". Even as a youth, he was inclined towards
mysticism. This is corroborated by his foremost critic Badowni who writes that "he
would sit many a morning alone in prayer and melancholy, on a large flat stone of an
old building near the palace in a lonely spot with his head bent over his chest, and
meditate on the enternal mystery of life". His association with the liberal, sheikh
Mubarak, and his two sons Faizi and Abul Fazl, endowed him with a greater awarness of
the hollowness of the ulemas' inter pretations and encouraged him to discern the truth
for himself.
2.4.5 Beginning of Toleration
His wedding with the princess of Ambar, 1562.It was the year 1562 when an
important incident occurred in the life of Akbar, which is considered to be the starting
point of his new religious policy. He married the daughter of Raja Behari Mal of Ambar.
Akbar treated this Rajput princess by hearty love and good treatment Raja Behari Mal
and his grandson, Raja Man Singh, were admitted to royal services. They were treated
with as much honour as any other high dignitary of the state. lt was these Rajputs who
were entrusted by Akbar with difficult and dangerous military expeditions. Thus Akbars
policy of marriages with Rajput princesses which began in 1562 ended the long
standing friction between the Rajputs and the Muslims. lt was really a master:-stroke of
his religious policy.'
Abolition of Pilgrimage Tax, 1563.
It was on account of this spiritual awakening that Akbar abolished
the
Pilgrimage Tax. ln 1563, on his visit to Mathura, Akbar was told that all the Hindus who
96
had assembled there for pilgrimage had been charged pilgrimage Tax. On an enquire,
he further learnt that this tax was charged from the Hindus at all places of pilgrimage.
Akbar could never be in vavour of such an unscrpulous tax, The result was that he
abolished this tax throught his kingdom, though at a great financial loss to the state.
(C) Abolition of Jizya, 1564 - Next year Akbar enacted a more revolutionary
measure. lt was the abolition of the hated Jizya or Poll tax on non-Muslims, which all
Turko. Afghan Sultans of Delhi and even his father and grand father had thought it as
their religious duty to realize.. Akbar, who had determined to end all distinctions
between the Hindus and the Muslims issued an order, in spite of the opposition of his
revence officers and the fanatic sunni Muslims, abolishing this tax on the Hindus
throughout his empire. The ablition to a great extent, appeased the ' Hindus who were
feeling agitated more on this tax than on anything else. Prof. S.R. Sharma says, 'with its
abolition, Akbar created a common citizenship for all his subjects, Hindus and Muslims
alike".
(d) Grant of Permission to non-Muslims to build their places of worship freely
- Akbar, not satisfied with these measures, went a step further. He wished to grant
perfect liberty of conscience to his non-muslim subjects. Thus, with this aim in view, he
removemed all the restrictions which stood imposed upon the construction of their
places of worship. The result of this ordinance was that the Rajput Sardars began to
erect temples in the names of their gods and goddesses. Raja Man Singh got erected
two great temples, one at Benaras and the other at Brindaban. The Christians also built
their churches, one at Lahore and the other at Agra. Akbar also is said to visited
Amritsar and made a good amount of offering to Guru Ram Dass, the fourth Sikh Guru.
Akbar is also said to have put up a gold canopy over the Goddess of Jawalamukhi in
Kangra.
(e) Removal of long standing cultural differences between the Hindus and
Muslims -Akbar also removed the long
communities. Prof. S.R. Sharma Says. "He established a Translation Department". Apart
from other duties, the duty of this department was also to translate the Hindu books of
religion into Persian and thus this department was responsible in translating the Hindu
religious books like the Atharvaveda, the Mahabharata, Harivamsa, and the Ramayana
into Persian. tt was, therefore, in this way the old Hindu religious literature was
patronized during the reign of Akbar and long standing cultural differences were
removed to a great extent".
(f) Prevention of conversations by force - By the issue of another royal order
Akbar discouraged the use of force in the conversation of people from one religion to
another so much so that the religion even of the prisoners of war could not be changed
by force. Though this order could not fully arrest the speed of conversions, yet it had a
very whole some and encouraging effect upon the minds of the Hindus. This measures
in creased to a great extent the loyalty and devotion of the Hindus towards Akbar.
(g) No consideration of religion in filling of high posts Akbar had opened the
gates of government services to the people of all castes, creeds and colours. Before
this, the posts were the monopoly of the Muslims, but Akbar appointed some of the
Hindus also on high posts in the state. Todar Mall was his finance minister. Raja
Mansingh was the Mansabdar of 7,000. ln provinces 8 out of 12 Diwans were Hindus. A
part from this, Todarml appointed those Hindus in the Revenue Department who had
learnt Persian language. The result was that most of the Hindus learnt persion
language. The result was that most of the Hindus learnt Persian and his brought the
Hindus and the Muslims very m
uch close to each other.
2.4.6. PERSONAL REASONS FOR RELIGIOUS TOLERATION :By the year 1575Akbar's religious belief had ceased to be a mere personal affair. No
aspect of Akbar's Character and history has been the subject of so much interest arid
98
controversy as his faith and religious policy. The influence of heredity upon the
development of Akbar's religious ideas should not be unduly exaggerated. There was
wide difference between the indifferentism of his early Central Asian ancestors, the
,unorthodoxy of his grandfather, the superstitutious mysticism of his father and the
rational eclecticism and dreamy mysticism of the great Akbar. A mystic as well as a
rationalist, Akbar was sincerely religious and an earnest seeker after truth. From early
youth he was fond of the society of fakirs and yogis. From 1562 for long eighteen years
he made annual pilgrimage to the Shrine of Shaikh Muin-ud-din Chisti at Ajmer. He had
early come into contact with Sufi literature and thoughts . Hafiz and Rumi were read to
him and he maintained this contact in advanced years.
Behind the conquest and the diplomacy there lay a melancholy soul. Suffering
from 'internal bitterness and 'lack of spiritual provision', yearning for truth.
Jesuit
Fathers found him melanchotic. In his 'Happy saying Akbar tells us how one night his,
heart was weary of the burden of life, when suddenly between sleeping and waking a
strange vision appeared to him and his spirit was some what comforted. Such visions
came to him from time to time. According the Abu-l-Fazl, as early as 1557, when Akbar:
was barely fifteen, during the siege of Mankot he had experienced religious ecstasy
when suddenly he broke away from the camp in to a distance where he spent many
hours in solitary meditation. Seventeen years later as he would often listen to Mir Shari
reading books on spiritual love, tears would roll down his eyes. Badun tells us that he
passed whole nights in praise of God and would sit many a morning alone in prayer
and meditation on a large flat stone in a lonely spot'. ln his eager search for truth,
Akbar imbibed a passionate love for philosophical discussions and only the pressure of
duties forced him to abstain from, religious discussion. . ln the liberal Shaikh Mubarak
and his son, Particularly Abul-Fazl, 'the Kings Jonathan' as the Jrisuits call him Akbar
found his true spiritual companions. Abull-Fazl,'who according to Baduni 'set the world
in flames', was a true eclectic whose heart was equally drawn towards the sages of
Cathay, the ascetics of Mount Lebanon, the Lames of Tibet, the Padres of Portugal, the
Mubids (Zorastran theologians) of Persia and the secrets of the Zend Avesta.
99
IBADAT KHANA
The Ibadat Khana ( House of Worship) was a meeting house built in 1575 CE by the
Moghul Akbar at Fatepur Sikri to gather spiritual leaders of different religious grounds
so as to conduct a discussion on the teachings of respective religious leaders.
All these led to the foundation in 1575 of the 'lbadat Khana (House Worship) at
Faltehpur Sikri where religious discussions were held every Friday evening. lt was
confined to Muslims and was divided into four sections, occupied by four classes of
members' the nobles of the court. Shaikhs or ascetics, Sayyids or descendants of the
prophet, and the Ulama or jurists. The violent intolerance of the orthodox party led by
Shaikh 'Abdun-Nabi and Makhadum-ul-Mulk and bitter differences between the Sunnis
and Shiahs disgusted the emperor and alienated him from Orthodox lslam. Of course he
showed his interest in pilgrimage by arranging Gulbadan Begam's journey to Mecca
(157s) and next year he himself intended to proceed on pilgrimage. But Akbar was
passing through a mental crisis, and 'the internal bitternes'.
ln January, 1578, he
expressed his abhorrence of meat diet and in April at Bhera, on the bank of the Jhelum,
occurred the famous hunting incident; when after ten days preparation birds and beasts
within a circumstance of fifty miles had been encircled for 'monstrous slaughter', Akbar
all on a sudden broke the hunt and set free all animals' 'not the feather of a finch was
to be touched.' 'A strong frenzy' seized him and he distributed alms and gold to jagirs. A
garden was laid and a structure raised to commemorate the hallowed spot where,
sitting under a tree, he had experienced the call.
ln October, 1578, discussions in the Ibadat Khana were revived with renewed
vigour and the House of worship had become a parliament of religions where the sufi,
the philosopher, the orator, the jurist, the Sunni and the Shiah, the Brahman and the
atheist (charvaka), the jain and the Buddhist, the Christian and the Jew, the Sabaean
and the Zorastrian and others met and debated under the presidency of the Mughal
100
emperor. The bitter differences among the 'Ulema' in these debates, which revealed
their shallow pride as well as the narrowness of orthodex Islam, further weakened his
faith in it and he decided to take all religious matters in lslam into his own hands.
Mahzarnama
The series of brilliant military successes had given him mastery over a considerable
portion of Northern lndia and he had already adopted measurer for its consolidation by
the establishment of a centralized government. The time had arrived when the King as
the seular head of the state should be the head in spiritual matters as well. The exalted
conception of sovereignty that he held necessitated it, and the Tirnurid tradition pointed
to it. On Friday,26 June 1579, emulating the Caliphs and his illustrious ancestor Timur,
Akbar mounted the pulpit of the mosque at Fatehpur Sikri and recited the Khutba
composed by Faizi in verse which modern author's believe with Badaurni that Akbar
made ambiguous use of these words to mean both God is great as well as Akbar is God.
. Like several Muslim rulers before him, Akbar claimed that he was the agent of God,
Khatifatu l- lah; he never: laid claim to divinity.
ln 2nd September, 1579 took the final step when he became the lmam and the
Mujtahid of the age by the famous Mahzar (Declaration) which he obtained from the
'Ulama. lt determined the rank of just King as higher than that of Mujtahid (highest
authority on law) and declared that Akbar as the just ruler (Sultan - i - adil) could
decide between Mujtahids, ,!f they differed in opinion on any religious question, by
accepting any of the conflicting views and that his decision was final and binding. Also it
empowered him to issue new orders which the people must obey, provided they were
in conformity with the Quran
was drafted by Shaikh Mubarak and Signed reluctantly, according to Baduni, by five
others, the Principal' Ulama and prominent theologians of Hindustan.
101
lt made Akbar, who was the temporal head of the State, the Supreme Head of the
Church or more properly the lslamic faith in lndia as well. The Mahzar was realty the
funeral oration of the 'Ulama' as it overthrew the nimbus of their legal and spiritual
power. It was then natural corollary to Akbar's idea of royal absolutism. lt led to the
virtual assumption by Akbar of the title of the Caliph and is closely connected with the
'Pulpit incident'. Some of his coins also bear the title of exalted Caliph and we are told
by 'Arif Quandadhari that in all the mosques of the Mughal empire the Khutba
intentioned him as Amir-ul-Muminim.
The decree had its significance in the outer lslamic world as well. lt was a justification of
Akbars Sovereign authority and a challenge to the Sultan Caliph of Turkey, The juridical
head of lslam in whose name the Khutba was recited at Mecca and Medina. It was a
reply to the Safavi Shans of Persia as well, who posed as the perpetual patrons of the
Mughal dynasty because both Akbar's father and grandfather had sought and obtained
Persian help on condition of accepting the Shiah faith. Arbar's authority was now
superior to that of the Mujtahids, the highest ecclesiastical and juridical authorities of
the Shiahs. The decree, however, did not at all involve Akbar's repudation of lslam it
was as a Muslim King that Akbar could decide between the conflicting views of the
Mujahids. Neither was Akbar invested with infallibility. The scope of the decree was
limited. The king should accept one of the conflicting views and any new order he might
issue must be in conformity with the Qur'an and for the benefit of the people.
There can be no doubt that the declaration displeased the 'Ulama and orthodox
Muslims. Soon after Akbar made his last Pilgrimage to Ajmer and he showed
extraordinary reverence to a stone brought from Mecca, carrying an impression of the
Prophet's foot, Akbar, however, had definitely became estranged from orthodox Islam.
The creed of his birth could no longer satisfy his enquiring spirit, and contact as well as
acquaintance with diverse creeds made him a confirmed eclectic. The influence of the
Hindu wives of his household had been strengthened by the Brahmans, particularily
Debi and Purushottam, who participated in the debates of the 'lbadat - Khana' and
102
instructed the emperor in the secrets of Hinduism. Akbar was converted to belief in
transmigration. He gave private interviews to several Hindu yogis from whom he made
enquiries about the secrets and spiritual questions regarding Hinduism.
Beginning of Sulh-iKul(Peace with all)
A sacred fire was established in the palace. ln 1580 Akbar began to prostrate
himself publicly before the fire and the Sun. ln this the emperor was influenced also by
Birbal, who gave emphasis to sun-worship, and by the Hindu ladies of his harem who
performed homa. Persian festivals were revived , with Persian names for month and
days, was adopted in 1584.
ln response to Akbar's invitation the first Jesuit mission from Goa arrived on 28th
February 1580, at Fatehpur Sikri, and received with gracious respect. lt consisted of
Father Rudolf Aquaviva, an ltalian, Antony Monserrate, a Spanisard, and Francis
Heniquez, a Persian convert who acted as the interpreter. Akbar showed profound
reverence for a copy of the Bible which the Fathers presented and made respectful
salutation to a picture of the Madona. He appointed Abu-l-Fazl to translate the Gospel
and Monserrate to give Murad a few lessons in Christianity'. The emperor built for them
a chapel in the palace and held prolonged discussions with them on Christianity. The
Fathers took part in the discussions with them at the 'lbadat Khana' where they used
very strong words about Islam and its Prophet, so much so that Akbar had to give them
mild warning. Akbar was highly impressed by Christianity, though he was not convinced
of the doctrines of the Trinity, of the Virgin birth of the son and the incarnation. The
Fathers hoped that they had discovered the second canstantine in the Mughal Emperor,
for in their zeal and bigotry they could not properly understand him and failed to notice
the varied appeals to which he equally responded.
103
Akbar invited and in 1582 received a Jain delegation as well which consisted of
Hivavijaya Suri, Bhanuchandra Upadhyaya and Vijayasena Suri. Jainism, with its
doctrine of non-violence, made a profound impression on him and influenced his
personal life. He curtailed his food and drink and ultimately abstained from flesh diet
altogether for nine months in the year. He renounced hunting which was his favourite
pastime, restricted the practice of fishing and released prisoners and caged birds.
slaughter of animals was prohibited on certain days and ultimately in 1587 for about
half the days in the year.
Already Akbar had become acquainted with Sikhism and came into contact with
its Gurus, Amar Das (died 1574) and Ram Das (died 1581).He found in the Granth only
love and devotion to God.
These studies and discussions on religions of various hues confirmed the growing
eclectricism of the Emperor who, as Badwin points out, found truth in all religions and
realized that it was not the monopoly of lstam. The idea gained ground among the
people that (Akbar was the Sahib-l-Zaman who would remove all differences of opinion
among the seventy two sects of lslam and the Hindus'. The turbulence of schisms
grieved him and he sought the way for its subsidence. He had so long strayed in the
maza of jarring creeds and he would now find out the path. The zero hour had arrived
in Akbar's Spiritual evolution and early in 1582 he promulgated the Sulh-l-kul. lt is
difficultto define the Divine Faith, for its author did not define it. lt was neither inspired
by revolation nor based on any well defined philosophy or theology. lt
was deism
modified by Hindu and predominant Zorostrian influence, a religion without priests and
books, 'an ethical rationalism leading to the ideal of mystic union of the soul with the
divine', in which respect it was based on the sufi idea of absorption of the soul in the
Divine being. lt
giving and sparing of animal life, permitting remarriage of widows, prohibiting child
marriage and marriage among close relations as well as forced sati, recommending
monogamy enforcing chastity and controlling gambling and' drinking by restricting the
sale of drink. The Din-l-llahi was definitely an attempt at religious syncretism, as much
104
a child of Akbar's spiritual development as a product of the age, following as it does the
movement of Kabir and Nanak. The syncretism was not quite happy because, though
Akbar was 'a rare jeweler and seeker after truth; his knowledge could neither be
systematic nor thorough, acquired as it was through ears. He.sought for lighting the
variegated and jarring creeds of man, but could not find it.
Towards the ctose of 1581, Akbar took another step in the field of religious toleration.
He thought of establishing a synthesis of various creeds by putting together the
fundamental principles of various religions. ln the beginning of 1582 he actually
translated his ideas into practice by establishing a new religion or brotherhood known
as sulh-l-kul. Dr. Hodlen writes, "Akbar experimented in all departments from religion to
metallurgy". lts basis was love, truth and religious tolerance, were to greet each other
in a new manner, they were to celebrate their birthday, they were to give a dinner to
their co-religionists, they were to abstain from meal - eating as far as possible, they
were to regard five as sacred and they were also expected and supposed to respect all
the religions. But unfortunately it could not be come very popular. ln the words of Dr.
V. Smith, "The whole scheme was the out come of ridiculous vanity, a monstrous
growth of unrestrained autocracy. lts ignominious failure illustrated the wisdom of the
protest addressed by the Kolwal to the Sultan of Delhi some three centuries earlier, and
the folly of kings who seeks to assume the role of prophets".
The divine faith was a monument of Akbar's folly, not of his wisdom. His actions
throughout his reign exhibited many illustrations of both qualities. Both the Hindus and
the Muslims failed to appreciate it and only a few persons become its members.
Lawrence Benyon says. "The new faith was a failure and was destined to be a failure,
because in religious societies toleration is not virtue, it is the despised offspring of
lukewarmness of difference. A creed so simple was obvious to the approach of
vagueness and emptiness." As the Jesuit Fathers said that by prompting alt religious he
was insulting all religions. The new faith could 'not appeal to the masses and during the
105
life time of the Emperor was accepted by only a few persons. lt is also evident from the
fact that new faith died along with the death of the emperor.
Meaning
In 1581 , Akbar founded order of brotherhood, known as sulh-i-Kul. Woolseley Haig
writes, "with the aid of his advisers he had concocted an assent from all men which
neither Christianity nor lslam had been able to ensure". Baduni Characterises it a
Tauhid-l-llahi, or Divine Monotheism. According to Dr. lswari Prasad, "lt was an eclectic
pantheism containing good points of all the religions", Lanepoole says, "of couse, an
electic religion never takes hold of the people and Akbars curiouslity interesting
hotchpotch of philosophy mysticism and nature - worship practically died with him. But
the broadminded sympathy which inspired such a vision of catholicity left a lasting
impression upon a land of warring creeds and tribes and for a brief, while created a
nation where there had only been factions.
Akbar was very keen on making experiment". ln fact Akbar, as a result of long
discussions at lbadat Khana, had come to the conclusion that all the religions were alike
in their fundamental principles. They differed only on their outer forms. So Akbar,
having put together the general principles of various religious, tried to establish a
synthesis of various creeds and named it Din-i-llahi. Malleson opines, Akbar's foremost
aim was the union of Hindustan under one head which was difficult to achieve and he
persecuted all non-lslamic religions. To accomplish such a union it was necessary first to
conquer, secondly, to respect alt consciences and all methods of worshipping the
Almighty. To carry out this plan he availed himself to a modified extent only of a
Muhammedan ritual.
Principles and Practices
Abul Fazall has given a detailed account of the Principles and practices of Din-lllahi. All the persons who became members of Din-l-llahi had to observe the following
practices
106
1. They were to follow a new mode of greeting each other A member while meeting the
other of his faith wilt satute by saying 'Allah-u- Akbar" and will be responded by "Jallaa-Jallahu."
2. The members were to celebrate their birth day and invite their co- religionists a
feast.
3. As far as possible they were to abstain from meat-eating but not to hate the meattakerss. ln the month of their birth they were not to take meat at all.
4. They were not to have any relation with animal or bird catchers and hunters.
5. They were neither to marry old women nor minor girls.
6. They were to respect all the religions.
7. They were to regard fire as very sacred.
8. They were supposed to avoid formalities.
Was Din-l-IIahi a Monument of Akbar's Fooly ?
Dr. V.A. Smith had strongly denounced Din-l-llahi of Akbar. According to him,
"The whole scheme was the outcome of ridiculous vanity, monstrous growth of
unrestrained autocracy a monument of Akbar's folly not of his wisdom." The vastness of
Akbar's empire, he contends, had turned his head and like Ala-ud-din Khilji he aspired
to become King, Prophet and Pope in one. And as such an attempt of every king had
failed . Akbar's Din-l-llahi met with failure. ln this connection Havell opines," ln the
western sense his mission was political rather than religious but for his endeavours to
make the highest religious principles the motive powers of state policy he won an
imperishable name in lndian history and failed the political ethics of lslam into a plane
higher than they had ever reached before .
But this view of Dr. Smith had been refuted by Dr. lshwari Prasad and Shri Ram
Sharma. D. lshwari Prasad writes. "lt was an electic pantheism containing the good
points of all religions - acombination of mysticism, philosophy and nature worship. lts
basis was rational; it upheld no dogma, recognized no gods or prophets and emperor
107
was its Chief exponent" The emperor's aim in founding Din-l-llahi was not religious at
all. lt was not to satisfy his vanity or to play the role of the prophet and pope that he
tounded the new faith. Had this been his motive he would certainly have employed the
whole state machinery for propagating his faith. Akbar did not even compel his close
associates, like Bhagwan Dass and Man Singh to become its members.
According to S.R. Sharma, "It was the crowning expression of the Emperor's national
idealism.' Just as the Emperor had conquered the whole of lndia he also wanted to put
the chief principles of various religions together and create a new religion in order to
bind lndia as a nation. Evidently, Din-l-llahi was not the monument of Akbar's folly. lt
was a monument of converting the empirer.
Some modern writers maintain that it was not a new faith but a reformation of
lslam. The Divene Faith ignored both the Prophet and the Quraan. lts ceremonial law
and theological doctrines were considerably different from those of lslam.
As an eminent authority has remarked. "The religion of Akbar is not to be looked
upon as a reform but a denial of lslam - a break with its traditions more decided that
that which manifests itself in the doctrines of Islam. In one of his 'Happy saying Akbar
confesses that he is no longer a Muslim. He ignored revelation and rejected the lslamic
doctrines of resurrection and Judgement. He believed in the doctrine of trans migration
of souls and in the worship of the Suri which islam does not admit. But, in his letter to
the Sharifs of Mecca, written not long before 1582,and in his two tetters written in
1586 to "Abdultah Khan', ruler of Bukhara, Akbar maintains that he is not only a good
Muslim but a champion of Islam. He was not prepared to risk his empire for the sake of
his personal religion ,
Conclusion
In short, his Din-Illahi was personal and rational from start to finish.From the time of
Akbar ascended
spiritually. He was neither a fanatic nor a fool. The , German historian , Von Noer, says
that Badauni merely represented the popular misconceptions.Many incidents of his life
show that he was a modest man. It was the people who made a God of the man.
UNIT - III
MOGHUL EMPIRE IN THE 17TH CENTURY
Structure
3.0Objectives
3.1 Introduction
3.2.1 Administrative and Religious Policy Jahangir
3.2.2 Rajput Policy
3.2.3 Policy towards Deccan
3.2.4 Policy towards central Asia
3.2.5 Nurjahan
3.2.6 Religious policy Jahangir
3.3.0 Administrative and Religious Policy of Shah Jahan
3.3.1 Policy towards Internal Rebellion
3.3.2 Policy towards Central asia
109
ln the 17th Century three important rulers of the Mughal Empire came to the
Throne. They were Jahangir, Shah Jahan and Aurangzeb. So after reading this unit, you
will :
Know the administrative and religious policy of Jahangir, Shah Jahan and
Aurangzeb.
110
Understand the the role of the role of Later Moghuls and factors responsible for
decline of Mogul empire.
Understand the regional power which developed after the decline of Mogul
empire
111
was fourth Moghul Emperor who ruled from 1605 until his death
in 1627.jahangir
Administration - Soon after his taking over to the throne, Jahangir in order to
placate the nobility, "honoured many of the greatest nobles (Abdur Rahim Khan, Son of
Abul Fazl and Mirza Ghiyas Beg) and powerful ministers and brave youths with
honourable titles and acceptable dignities."
' To win over the hearts of his peopte he suspended the chain of justice with
golden bells "so that the aggrieved persons could obtain adequate justice at all hours of
the day" (Jahangir's Memoirs).
He issued twelve ordinances to be uniformly implemented alt over his empire,
prohiting numerous cesses that only hindered trade and commerce; advocating road
safety for the travellers; regulating the inheritance of property; regulating wine;
forbidding the cutting of limbs by way of imparting punishment; regulating building of
hospitals; prohibiting slaughter of animals on certain days including Sundays;
confirming various Mansabs and jagirs and issuing new ones to individuals and religious
preachers of merit: and granting amnesty to all prisoners.
Khusrau's Rebellion
- Before the above mentioned reforms could impact on the administration, Jahangir
had to brazen out the rebellion of his eldest born, Prince Khusrau who in spite of his
magnetic charm was "an immature youth of fiery temper and weak judgement". Earlier
too, he had been coaxed into rebellion by Raja Man Singh Akbar's death, however, had
effected a temporary concitiation between the Raja and Jahangir. On latter's accession
to the throne, however when Raja Man Singh's fortunes suffered an inevitable eclipse,
the relations between Jahangir and Khursou also correspondingly worsened. The latter
was kept semi-confined. ln 1606 A.D, Khusrau escaped to Punjab. At Taran Taran, he
received the blessings and gift of Rs. 5000 from Guru Arjan Singh and successfutly
besieged Lahore. The governor however, refused to render any assistance and the
prince was finatly captured while attempting to cross the Chenab. Khusra was partially
blinded, imprisoned and till the end remained under a cloud of suspicion. The other
113
supporters, including Guru Arjan Singh, were ruthlessly killed. While some critics have
tried to pin Guru Arjan's murder as a symbol of religious persecution, in reality, the
punishment was "inflicted as a penalty for high treason and conspiracy" V. Smith.
Jahangir's Wars
The Principal wars of his reign were spread from Qandhar in the North to the
Deccan in the South and can be analyzed under four headings.
1. His Rajput policy that culminated in the subjugation of Mewar in 1614 A.D.
2. The Deccan policy leading to the capture of Ahmadnagar in 1616 A.D.
3. Policy towards Central Asia which resulted in the ultimate loss of Qandhar in
1622A.D.
4. The Caputure of Kangra in 1620 A.D.
3.2.2. Rajput PolicyMewar campaign
Profoundly conscious of the politico-strategic and economic significance of
Mewar to the Mughal empire, Jahangir at once dispatched an army of 20,000 against
Mewar under the command of his son, prince Parvez. The first battle proved indecisive
for Khusrau's revolt necessitated the recalled of the Mughal troops.
A second mission was dispatched in 1608 A.D. under the distinguished
command of Mahabat Khan. This time too, the Mughals secured only marginal victories
that failed to impress the, enemy. ln 1609 A.D., Mahabat Khan was replaced by Abdulla
Khan but, with fortunes varying, neither side could proclaim a victory. Meanwhile,
Abdulla Khan was recalled to the Deccan Wars. Finally, in 1614 A.D., under the able
and absolute command of Prince Khurram, the Mewar region was devastated.
Consequently. The Rana, Amar Singh, was forced to seek peace. He agreed to
recognize the suzerainty of the Mughals and send his son to the imperial court. This is
corroborated by Jahangir in his memories "Rana Amar Singh and his ancestors, relying
upon the security of the mountains and his home, had never seen any of the Kings of
Hindustan, had never shown obedience, but now in my fortunate reign he had been
compelled to make his submission." ln return, Jahangir restored Chittor to the Ranas on
114
the condition that it should neither be refortified nor repaired. Rana Amar Singh
abdicated in favour of Karan Singh, his eldest son.
Significance
Jahangir, like Akbar, was fully aware of the extreme sensitivity of the Rajputs.
Accordingly he expressed due to courtesy and honour to Raja Karan Singh. He was
given a Mansab of 5000 Zat and Sawar, besides many lavish gifts of Jeweltery and
cash. As for the house of Mewar, the Ranas remained loyal supporters of the Mughals
till Aurangzeb's fanaticism and suspicions constrained them into open rebellion.
3.2.3. Policy towards Deccan, 1616 A.D.
Prince Salim's rebellion had compelled Akbar to hastily conclude
his Deccan
campaign. His victories, therefore, besides securing Berar and Asirgarh, had proved
indecisive, and unless the Mughals seized the districts of Balghat and Telingana, they
could be politically or economically effective. :Jahangir, therefore, had two alternatives :
(a) Either he could confine the Mughals to the upkeep of Akbar's policy in the region
and contain themselves to Akbar's victories. This' however, would continue to
embroil the Mughals in border clashes with the Deccani states and the Nizam
Shahis in particular.
(b) Jahangir could pursue a forward policy with the ultimate aim of establishing
paramountcy in Deccan. This policy, however, was bound to involve the Mughals
in direct confrontation not only with the Nizamshahis but also with the other two
Deccani States of Bijapur and Golkonda.
the same
of Deccani was
state. To thwart the Mughal challenge, he effectively mobilized the existing state
resources to strengthen the Nizam Shahi army. By adopting the guerilla tactics , he
successfully negated the impact of the traditional methods of warfare on which the
Mughals relied exclusively. Thus, no quick decisive victory was possible for no pitched
battle was fought. The methods, an outcome of the Deccan terrain, when tater
exploited by the Marathas for more extensively, ultimately brought forth the ruin of the
Mughal empire.
Malik Amber was also the first to perceive the valour of the light Maratha horse.
(B. Prasahad), and effectively organized them against the Mughals. They avoided
pitched batiles but always hung on the skirt of the enemy, cutting off supplies, wasting
the country, robbing and plundering. The Mughals always deficient in the military art,
seldom adopted themselves to the new tactics and ultimately succumbed to them. Thus
Malik Amber, as great a master of the art of guerilla warfare as Shivaji himself, stands
at the head of the builders of the Maratha nationality. Unconsciously he nourished into
strength a power which more than revenged the injuries of the South on the Northern
empire. .
Malik Ambar's assignment of recovering the lost territories was made easier by
the existing mutual jealousies and factions that waged rampant amongst the Mughal
officers posted at Burhanpur. Prince Parvez in capable of imposing any discipline proved
a governor only in name and the real authority was exercised by Khan-l-Khanan.
Consequently, the Mughals had to fight the battle on two fronts - against the Nizam
Shahi forces which were expediently guided by the master mind of Malik Ambar; and a
war of recriminations within their own empire.
From 1608 A.D. to 1610 A.D., Khan-l-Khanan was in command of the Mughal
operations. He, however, could barely withstanding drought, took a heavy toll of the
Mughal army. The Khan-I-Khanan, therefore was forced to sign a humiliating peace.
The Mughal promised a safe passage to Burhanpur on the condition that they
surrendered Ahmadnagar.
117
apart. The emissaries, therefore, were cordially received; Adil Shah accepted the
Mughal terms without fighting a war. Among others Adil Shah himself waited on the
Prince and rendered a handsome tribute of over fifteen lakhs on behalf of the Deccan
Chief.
ln the entire territory of Balaghat recently seized by Malik Ambar was ceded to
the Mughals and the keys of the Ahmadnagar fort and other strongholds were formally
delivered.Khan-l-Khanan was appointed the governor or Berar, Khandesh and
Ahmadnagar while his eldest son, Shah Nawaz Khan was stationed in the territory
restored, at the head of 12000 cavalry. Selected reliable officers were appointed to
every post. ln all, 30,000 forces were left in the Deccan.Khurram himself was promoted
to the unprecedented rank of 30,000 Zat and Sawar. He was also bequeathed the title
of Shahjahan and entittled a chair near the imperial throne in the Darbar.Adil Shah, far
from being humiliated was extended due courtesy and respect.
Assessment of Jahangir's Deccan Policy
Jahangir's policy of safeguarding the Mughal holding of Ahmadnagar by entering
into a military alliance with Bijapur, only increased the Mughal obligations and led to
their futile involvement in the Southern politics. There were several factors accounting
for the failure of Jahangir's Deccan policy among others. So long as Malik Ambar lived,
no Mughal victory could remain permanent. Deeply devoted to his state and region, he
won back all that he had lost to the Mughals. Even in 1621A.D. the Mughals, besides a
sum of 50 lakhs of rupees, gained barely fourteen 'Kos' of territory. The mutual
recriminations and jealousies of the various Mughal Commanders proved a further
setback to the success of the Mughal policy. lt was easy to build forts in the natural
rugged land of Deccan but difficult to subdue them. Since every hill was a fort, large
armies got lost, while small armies simply collapsed. The Mughals never learnt to
effectively thwart the guerilla warfare. The transportation of various goods and
119
commodities was equally hazardous, for the Banjaras were often intercepted by the
Deccanis. The main cause was, however, the reluctance of the Mughals to launch an all
forward attack which gave the Deccanis an opportunity to organize themselves.
Jahangir's indecisiveness only secured the Mughals a stalemate in Deccan from
1621'1631 A.D. Had he devoted all Mughal energies and resources to the consolidation
of Mughal suzerainty over Deccan region, he might have secured a long tasting success.
3.2.4 Policy Towards Central Asia
Jahangirs Central Asian policy consisted of two facets. :
(a) Relations with Persia.
(b) Relation with Central Asia.
It is commonly beloved that, Babur's homesickness for the lost ancestral lands
had equally fired the imagination of his successors. The Munhall, therefore, planned to
recover Trans - Ocilla, in Central Asia, as part of their imperialistic and expansionist
activities, the desire to possess Mawara un-Nar also brought them in line with the
cause of the Persian diplomacy and frustrated the attempts of the Ottoman Sultans to
draw them into a religious alliance of Sunni powers against Persia. It also estranged
them from the Khans of Mawara-un- Mahr who afraid of an invasion from lndia .They
exploited their religious tolerance by extensive propaganda amongst the North west
frontier tribes of lndia and on the other hand the fear of the lndo - Persian cooperation
in case of an attack drew them into closer alliance with the Ottoman sultans (Abdul
Rahim)
The Safavid empire (Per.sia) and the Uzbegs constituted the traditional political
rivals in central Asia. Their incessant warfare and interminable internal wrangles of
succession compelled them to seek alliance with out side powers, like the Ottoman
Empire and the Mughals.
120
As for the Mughals, traditionally, they felt closer to the Persians since their
cultural-heritage was more akin to them. Both Babur and Humayun had appealed to the
Persians for help which was duly granted. The Persian inftuence was equatly evident at
the Mughal court where the Sultans as enthusiastic patrons of art and literatures, had
provided adequate asylum for the various intellectuals who had eschewd the narrow
fanaticism of the Safavids. A policy of matrimonial alliances had further strengthened
their mutual relations. Thus the daughter of Muzaffar Hussain Mirza was married to
Shahjahan while two of his nieces were married to Parvez and Shuja; the daughter of
Shahanzavaz Khan Safavi was crried to Aurangzeb.
Politically, too, the Mughals preferred the Persions to the Uzbegs, who not only
viced with the Mughals for the possession of Badakshan which constituted the main
defence of Kabul but also maintained sufficient hold on the frontier tribes of the North West region, to create trouble for the Mughals.
When the Uzbegs inspite of their common Sunni heritage could not successfully
wean away the Mughals. from Shia Persians, they drew closer to the Ottoman Sulltns
who proved yet another serious contender for the struggle for dominance in central
Asia. lf Persia was exterminated, it would. by only a question of time before the
Ottomans together with the Uzbegs threatened lndia. Moreover, a strong Persia would
also restrain the Uzbegs from inciting the Afghan tribes of the North-Western frontier
into rebellion against the Mughals.
A powerful Persian empire, was a political necessity for the Mughals, not only for
maintaining a balance of power in central Asia, but also to safeguard their North
Western borders. Hence, while the annexation of their traditional lands was an ideal to
strive for, the policy of expansion towards Central Asia was secondary to the primary
consideration of safeguarding their North-West borders.
Relations with Persia - The occupation of Qandhar proved the sole bone of
contention between the two powers. Strategically, the occupation of Kabul and Qandhar
was regarded essential for the security of the lndian borders. Economically it provided a
121
valuable commercial route for all the trade to Central Asia passed through these
regions. The Persians, too, for historicat reasons, were equally keen to posses the
region. Consequently, when Humayun sought asylum in Persia, he was granted the
same on the condition that he surrendered Mughal claims to Qandhar. However, once
Humayun secured its possession, he changed his mind refused to hand over Qandhar to
Persia. An exchange of embassies between the two imperial courts, however, continued
as before.
During Akbar's reign, while he was occupied with affairs nearer home, the
Persian Shah launched an attack on Qandhar. A ready Pretext was provided by the
revolt of Baahadur Khan, the Mughal governor . To justify his attack on Qandhar, the
Shah of Persia sent 3000 Turkomans to help Muhammad Kiladi. Bahadur Khan's army
completely routed. Shah Muhammad, however, evaded the surrender of the fort of
Qandhar. The Persians launched a second attack which proved more successful and
resulted in the Persian occupation of Zamindar; Akbar was unable to send any
reinforcements and ultimately the local governor, left to exercise his own discretion,
surrendered to the Persians.
Relation with Central Asia
Akbar's primary interest
was
avoided getting in a joint expedition against the Persians. Thus in 1572A.D, when Miza
Sulaiman fled from Badakshan, he was given asylum at the Mughal court but refused
any military help. lt was only in 1585 A.D. that Akbar became furious with Abdulla
'Khan, and when approached by Sutaiman and Shah Rukh, ordered Raja Man Singh to
move the imperial army. At this juncture, Mirza Hakim's death led to the annexation of
Kabul to the Mughal empire.
Akbar had simultaneously strengthened his Northern borders by capturing
Kashmir and Swat. ln 1594 A.D. he wanted, to seize Qandhar. The Persians, in need of
the Mughal good will, had no option but to accede to the demand.
Jahangir's reign Jahangir had no intentions of pursuing an active policy towards
Central Asia. As a Prince, he had been friendly with Shah Abbas, the Persian Sultan. His
reign, however, began with an unsuccessful attempt by the Persians to occupy Qandhar
who, taking advantage of Akbar's death and Khusrauls rebellion, attacked Qandhar.
Shah Beg Khan, the Mughal governor, bravely held fast till fresh reinforcements under
Mirza Jani of Sindh foiled the Persian attempt and forced them to retire. The of
friendship was maintained between the two imperial courts. The Persian Shah sent
Hussain Beg to apologise for the indiscretion of his governors. Jahangir, too,
reciprocated the friendly sentiment by sending an ambassador with precious gifts for
the Shah. The exchange of embassies continued till 1622 A.D. The Persian embassies in
all probability, were sent to expedite the negotiations for a peaceful restoration of
Qandhar. But when these effort proved of no avail, the Persians taking advantage of
Jahangirs departure for Kashmir and the Mughal negligence of Qandhar, besieged
Qandhar in 1622 A.D. Jahangir ordered immediate preparations for war, but the
imperial plans were frustrated by Shahjahan's refusal to accompany the expedition. The
internal dissensions of the Royal family allowed the Persians to seize Qandhar. While
Jahangir was in the midst of planning another expedition, the news of Shahjahan's
rebellion came forth and Qandhar was lost to the Mughals for the time being.
123
While Shahjahan's refusal and rebellion undoubtedly led to the loss of Qandhar,
it would be far -fetched to assurne that Shahjahan concived with the Shah of Persia and
the Deccanis to launch a simultaneous attack on the Mughals. He, however, did send
his personal emissary with chosen gifts for the Shah and the message. "l too have like
my forefathers turned to you for help with the hope that you will give me proper aid at
the proper time". The Shah advised Shahjahan to remain loyal to his father. The Shah
also explained the 'fall of Qandhar. to Jahangir, " as promised to him by his ancestors."
Jahangir, however, rebuked the Shah for breaking faith and old friendship. "There
should be no need for physical contact and still less should there be any necessity for
visiting one anothers countries for hunting and sight seeing". The shah endeavoured to
reconcile Jahangir by cold shouldering Shahjahan. ln 1624A.D., he sent Aqa beg to
bring about a possible resumption of diplomatic negotriations. Jahangir gave him due
respect but sent no ambassador to Persia.
Conquest of Kangra 1620 A.D.
The Kangra fort, situated on a lofty hill, was massively fortified by nature. lt was
also surrounded by a number of fortress which were in possession of hill chiefs- ln its
vicinity, lay the famous temple of Jawalamukhi at Nagarkot.
Firoz Tughlaq was the first Sultan who had tried to conquer the formidable fort.
Akbar too, had attempted to conquer the fortress but all invain. Jahangir, on ascending
the throne, entailed Murtaza Khan, the governor of Punjab, to conquer the fortress. The
attempt proved futile. Next, Shahjahan was entrusted with the command. The
imperialistic forces launched an offensive with full vigour, the hill chiefs were subdued
and after a prolonged siege of fourteen months. The fort surrendered on 16th
November 1620 A-D.
3.2.5 NURJAHAN
124
Nur Jahan or Noor Jahan (1577-1645 )was born as Mehr-un-Nissa was empress of the
Mughal Empire and the chief consort of the Emperor Jahangir.A strong , charismatic
and well educated women, she is considered to be one of the most powerful and and
influential women of the 17th century Mughal Empire.She was
favourite wife of the Emperor Jahangir who ruled Mughal Emperor Empire at peak of
its power and supremacy.The story of the couples infatuation for each other and the
relationship that developed between them has been stuff of many(often apocryphal)
legends.
As result of her second husbends, the emperor Jahangir serious battle with alchol and
opium addiction, Nur Jahan was able to weild a considerable amount of imperial
influence and was
throne.She remains historically significant for not only the sheer political power she
maintained but also for her contribution to the Indian culture,charity work commercial
trade and her ability to rule with an iron fist. She was the aunt of the Empress Mumtaz
Mahal for whom the future Emperor Shah Jahan built the Taj Mahal.Further more she is
the only Mughal empress to have her name struck in silver coins.
125
Early LifeMiher un-nissa born in Qandhar. His father name was Mirza Ghiyas Beg. His
family
left Tehran, for lndia, in search of employment. At the Mughal court, Ghiyas,
endowed with adequate intelligence and shrewedness, rapidly achieved eminence and
in 1595 A.D. was appointed the Diwan of Kabul. Miherunnisa, still in her teens, was
married to Sher Afghan who himself had attained a jagir in Bengal through sheer hard
work.
The popular belief that Jahangir inflamed by Nurjahan's poise and beauty, got rid
of Sher Afghan, in order to mary her, is a romantic myth and is corroborated neither by
any contemporary chronicles nor any foreign travelers .
Jahangir, therefore, was innocent of Sher Afghan's murder though on hearing
reports of his anti-state activities, he had advised the governor of Bengal to send him to
the Imperial court. Qutb-ud-din, the governor, made the mistake of attempting to
emprison him. Sher Afghan, misinterpreted the Mughal intentions, attacked the
Governor, which provoked the latters retainers to lacerate Sher Afghan to pieces.
His widow, Miher un-nissa together with her daughter, Ladli Begum, proceeded
to imperial court where her father was holding an important office, and where soon she
was appointed a lady in waiting. ln all probability, it was there that Jahangir fell for her
sentiments that Miherunissa sincerely reciprocated.
126
Their grand alliance was celebrated in 1611 A.D. when she was thirty-four years
old and the Sultan was fast approaching his mid forties age. However, it proved no
hindrance to the success of their union. It also did not deprive them of the romantic
aura. For Jahangir specialty, the alliance proved more emotional for having succumbed
to a life of case luxury. He was psychologically not disinclined to be pampered in his
ersonal life. Politically too, he was not "unwilling to see the business of government
pass into the hands of a fair creature, who loved with all the strength of her strong
personality, who was wilting to follow all the principles of his government; who gave
him entire satisfaction and yet spared him a great deal of extertion and anxiety.,
The Junta No aspect of Nurjahan, except her marriage to Jahangir, has provoked such
blatant criticism, as the contention of the existence of a Junta. The issue is important
for its reflects a distinct phase in Nurjahan's bid for gradual yet complete political
ascendancy in the state.To Dr. B. Prasad, the leading supporter of the Junta theory,
Nurjahan's political dominance can be clearly demarcated into two phases.
From 1611-1620 A.D. when shortly after Nurjahan's marriage, Junta comprising
of Nurjahan, her father ltamad-ud-Daula, her brother. Asaf Khan and Prince Khurram
(Shahjahan) was formulated who gradually assumed a predominant hold over the state
politics .Consequently, all important political events of this time, namely, the rapid rise
in the Mansab of ltmad-ud-Daula and his son Asaf Khan, the sudden halt of Mahabat
Khan's promotion between 1011-1022 A.D were monitored. The imprisonment of Khanl-Azam, the extra ordinary rise of Khurram that culminated in his marriage to Mumtaz
Mahal, Asaf Khan's daughter, the eclipse of Parvez and the varying fortunes of
Khusau,all accrued from the likes and dislikes of the Junta members. Through-out this
period, "the court politics was divided into pro junta and anti-junta nobility" and "what
has been called Nurjahan's sway, was really the sway of these four personages".
However, so long as the Junta operated, it restrained Nurjahan's inordinate love for
power.
127
From 1622 A.D. onwards, partially owing to the death of her parents who had
always exercised a moderating restraint on her ambitions and the increasing invalidity
of Jahangir as well as the growing realization that in a single empire there was no room
for two such masterful spirits as Nurjahan and Shahjahan," Nurjahan was convinced of
the necessity to bid for unrestrained autocracy. This only plunged the country into
blood and strife unlike the Junta which, on the whole had maintained peace and
prosperity in the Kingdom. The supporters of "Junta hypothesis', chiefly B. Prasad, have
advocated the fotlowing arguments:1) From 1611 Nurjahan and her associates filled most of the vacancies in the lmperial
service with their own eupporters. Their favour was the sole passport to honour and
rank. . Among others
(a) ltmad-ud-Daula, Nurjahan's father while deserving promotion on his own merit, as
the Emperor's father-in-law and the strongest pillar of Nurjahan's Junta, was conferred
the high Mansab of 7000 Zat/ 7000 Swaar; (b) Nurjahan's brother, Asaf Khan, was
appointed the master-of household in 1611 A.D, which was only the beginning of his
unchequred promotions, Apart from these appointments there were other events of
significance manipulated by the Junta, Thus (a) Prince Khurram's marriage to Mumtaz
Mahal, Asaf Khan's daughter, was clearly an outcome of political expediency and it
solemnized the adoption of Khurram as the Junta candidate for the lmperial throne.
(b) Khurram's ascendancy to the Mansab of 30,000 Zat/ 20,000 Sawar, over other
princes, as also his appointment to command the Mewar and the Deccan campaign
were attributed to the predominant influence wielded by the Junta
(c) The varying fortunes of prince Khusrau, too were attributed to Junta's dislike of his
personality. Thus in 1613 A.D. whne the Emperor relented and permitted Khusrau to
pay the reversal of this provision. Similarly the transfer of the captive Khusrau to the
charge of Asaf Khan and the way in which the latter ultimately got rid of Khusru, only
illustrate the supreme hold that the Junta enjoyed over the Sultan.
128
(c) The stagnation of Mahabad Khan's otherwise brilliant career also resulted from
his refusal to pay-any homage to the Junta. His plea to the Emperor to get rid of
the petticoat shackles not only proved effective but caused a further set back to
his career. Consequently, having risen to the Mansab of 4000 Zatt 3500 Sawar in
1612 A.D. he had to wait for the next promotion till 1612A.D. He had to wait for
the next promotion till 1622 A.D. when Nurjahan, to safeguard her own interest.
He preferred to appease him rather than incur his antagonism. "Meanwhile, he
was required to waste his talents in fruitless campaigns of Deccan and Afghan
warfare from the center of the empire".
(d)The growing influence of Nurjahan in the state affairs, is categorically pointed by
Mutamad Khan. Day by day her influence and dignity increased .All her relations and
connexions were raised to honour and wealth. No grant of lands was conferred upon
any one except under her seal. ln addition to giving her the titles that other kings
bestow, the Emperor granted Nurjahan the rights of Sovereignty and government.
Sometimes she would sit in the balcony of her palace, while the nobles would present
themselves and listen to her dictates Coins were struck in her name .. Repeatedly he
gave out that he had bestowed the sovereignty on Nurjahan Begum and would say, "l
require nothing beyond a sip of wine and half a seer of meat".
Advantages of the JuntaThe Junta regime continued the maintenance of peace and prosperity in the
Kingdom, and proved a far better alternative to Nurjahan's later attempt at autocracy.
Moreover, the dominant clique, closely aware of the Emperor's temperament, like and
prejudices, sought to manage him rather than rule him. Jahangir's fundamental
principles underlying the domestic and foreign policy remained intact and were adhered
to by the Junta.
As for the emperor, so long as he enjoyed sound health, he continued to evince
keen interest in the affairs of the state. Basically, therefore, there was no clash of
129
interests between the Junta and the emperor. lf at all, it acted as a restraint on the
overly ambitious Nurjahan.
Causes of the downfall of the JuntaThe fast deteriorating health of Jahangir by 1623 A.D. made Nurjahan insecure
for her own future status and Power.Nurjahan, fully acquainted with Shajhahan's rise
and ambition as also his ability to rule and command, understaood well that he would
brook no interference nor dominance of anyone, least of all of her equally imperious
self.
Another wedge was drawn on account of religion. According to Dr. B. Prasad,
this was yet another factor that estranged the Shia Nurjahan from the Sunni Shahjahan.
Nurjahan, aware of these three factors, clearly discerned, therefore that within
Jahangir's lifetime, she could either retire from public life or could attempt to so
effectively assert herself that she became the unquestionable spokesman of the
imperial policies. ln full enjoyment of splendid vigour of body and mind, she preferred
Conclusions There is lack of substantial evidence to prove that the imperial court, from 1611 A.D.,
was divided into pro-Nurjahan and anti- Nurjahan factiors, There is no doubt that
Nurjahan, by her stubbom, hauthty and revengeful temper worsended in proportion to
her growing insecurity regarding her future, encouraged the court factions and princes
intrigues. To a great extent, this provoked Shahjhan to revolt against Jahangir. Had she
kept the lmperial interests above mutual recriminations, she would not have been misled by her passions to support Shahriyar against the for more able Shahjahan She
supported Shahriyar merely because he seemed "a pliable instrument to further her
own gains." The real cause of the growing court frictions "lay in the depending crisis of
the Mansabdari system." The incessant demand of the nobility to claim higher Mansabs
for themselves on the other hand, the laxity with which Jahangir granted them, created
an, anomaly which soon lost all relations to reality. Besides the impossibility of finding
130
adequate Jagirs, the higher Mansabdars found it difficult to maintain the required
number of Sawars and bring them for periodic review. Constantly the Mansabs fast lost
their intrinsic value and gave way to incessant intrigues amongst the nobles. Jahangir's
own soft and erratic handling of the Mansabadari crisis, his unpredictable temperament
and susceptibility to gossip, only worsened the situation. Since, by 162AA.D., no group
emerged as stronger than others it convinced Nurjahan of,the need to consolidate her
own position, especially in view of Jahangir's failing health.
3.2.6 Religious Policy of Jahangir
The tolerant and secular character of the religion and state instituted by Akbar
was maintained during the first half of the 17th Century. But during the reign of
Jahangir there was minor lapses. At the outset of Jahangir's reign, there was an
orthodox circles that Akbars policy of Sulh-l-kul and religious eclecticism would be
abandoned, and the supremacy of the Sharia restored. The hopes of the Orthodox
sections were raised by some actions of Jahangir immediately after his accession. Thus,
he had asked the ulema and the learned men of lslam to collect distinctive appellations
of God which were easy to remember so that he might repeat them while using his
rosary. On Fridays he associated with learned and pious men and
saints. At the
Ramzan ld which followed his first accession, he went to the ldgah, and several lacs of
Dams were distributed in charity. However, there was nothing unusual in these actions,
and the orthodox elements were soon disabused of their expectations. Neither by
temperament nor by training was Jahangir orthodox. A part from his own fondness of
drinking which he sometimes ' carried to excess-he tells'
accession he had reduced his in take of wine from twenty cups of double distilled spirit
(brandy) to five, and that, too only at night. Jahangir felt free to invite his nobles and
others to join him in wine drinking. When be visited the grave of Babur at Kabul he
found a basin which could contain two Hindustani maunds of wine. Jahangir ordered
another such a basin to be built, and every day he ordered to fill both the basins with
131
wine and gave it to the servants who were present there. There was a supplement of
dance and music. There are frequent references in his Memoirs to such parties to which
nobles were invited.
ln the ordinances which Jahangir issued at the time of his accession, for two
days in a weak, Thursday; the day of his accession, and Sunday, the day of Akbar's
birthday and because 'it was dedicated to the Sun and also the day on which creation
began" (according to the Christian). There was to be no killing or slaughter of animals
for food. Shortly, after words, in what were catled the Ain-l-Jahangiri or Jahangiri rules,
forcible conversion to lslam was forbidden.
Not only did Jahangir follow Akbar's policy of Sulh-t-Kul, he continued Akbar's
Policy of enrolling murids (disciples) and giving each of them a token, or shast, and
Shabi or likeness of the emperor. At the time of initiation, the disciples were advised to
avoid sectarian quarrels, and to follow the rule of universal peace with regard to religion
they were futher advised not to kill any living creature with their own hands, honour
the luminaries (sun, light etc) which are manifestations of God and to dwell constantly
on God. However, the devise of discipleship which was meant to bind the bobles closely
with the Emperor seems to have fallen into disuse after some time.
Jahangir also proscribed cow slaughter in the Punjab, and perhaps extended it to
Gujrat. Nauroz, which was an old Central Asian festival as also the festival of the Parsis,
was celebrated for nineteen days with music and festivity. The Christians, too, were
allowed to celebrate Easter, Christmas and other Festivals. These practices were a
public declaration of a policy of religious freedom to all. They also provided opportunity
for greater social interaction between the ruler and his officials with people of various
religious persuations.
The position regarding religious freedom is set out clearly in one of the early
drafts of the Tukuk where Jahangir say, "l ordered that with this exception (prohibition
of forcible sati), they (the Hindus) may follow whatever is their prescribed custom, and
none should exercise force or compulsion or oppression over any one."
132
There was no ban on the Hindus building new temples. Apart from Bir Singh Deo
Bundela building a magnificent temple at Mathura, a large number of number of new
temples were built at Banaras. The Christians too, were given land and permission to
build Churches. Jahangir continued Akbars policy of giving gifts and grants to Brahmans
and temples. ln his first Regnal year (1605-06), when marching against Khusrau, he
distributed large sums of money to fakirs and brahmans. Documents in the possession
of the Vrindavan temples of the Chaitanya sect show how Jahangir went on addiing
grants to the temptes and their votaries. Thus, between 1612-15, he made at least five
grants to the followers of Chaitanya at Vrindavan.
Despite his liberalism, there were occasions when Jahangir displayed a narrow spirit,
perhaps out of a desire to please the orthodox clerical elements who were powerful, or
out of a desire to be seen by them as an orthodox Mustim ruler. Thus, he declared the
war against Mewar to be a jihad, although there was little reason for doing so. During
the campaign, many Hindu temples were destroyed which, again, was uncalled for.
because Jahangir had instructed Khurram to treat the Rana as a friend if he was
prepared to submit. Again, in 1621 the Kangra campaign was declared a Jihad, even
though it was commanded by a Hindu, Raja Bikramjit .As we have noted, in the
presence of theologians a bullock was staughtered in the fort and a mosque ordered to
be erected. From Kangra, Jahangir went to the Durga temple at Jwatamukhi. He found
that apart from "infidels whose custom is the worship of idols, crowds on crowds of the
people of Islam, traversing long distances, bring their offerings, and pray to the black
(stone) image." No attempt was made to put a stop to this practice. Earlier, while
visiting Pushkar, Jahangir was shocked to find that the Hindus worshipped Vishnu in the
form of a Varaha (boar). He ordered the image to be broken noting that the Hindu
theory of incarnation in ten forms was not acceptable to him since God could not be
limited in this way. However, none of the other temples dedicated to Vishnu were
harmed. At Ajmer, Jahangir granted in Madadd-l-maash the entire village of pushkar to
the brahmans of that place.
133
ln 1617, Jahangir issued an order in Gujarat that all Jain temptes be closed and
the Jain saints expelled from the empire because of moral reasons. Wives and
daughters of the devotees visited the Jain Saints at the tempes should be ousted. But
this order does not seem to have been implemented because we have inscription at
evidence from Gujarat supported by Jain sources that during the period when the order
was issued Jahangir continued to have good relations with jain saints and also gave
liberal grants for the construction of Jain temples .
There has been a good deal of controversy about Jahangir's attitude towards the
Sikhs, and his dealings with the Sikh Guru Arjun. ln his Memoirs, Jahangir notes that at
Gobindwal on the river Beas, Guru Arjun "posing as a religious guide and instructor"
had enrolled as his followers a large number of Hindus and Muslims, that "They called
him Guru, and from all sides came to him and expressed their absolute faith in him". He
goes on to say that this had continued for three or four generations. Denouncing the
follower,s of the Guru as "fools and fraud - believers," Jahangir declares that" Many
times it occurred to me to put a stop to this vain affair or to bring him into the assembly
of the people of Islam."
This statement occurs almost immediately after Jahangir's accession, and in the
context of Khusrau's rebellion. lt is not clear when precisely Jahangir had contemplated
taking action against the Sikhs. lf it was during Akbar's reign, it is well known that
Akbar had faroured Guru Angad and Guru Ramdas and given them a grant of five
hundred Bighas of land and a pond around while the Harmandir and the city of Amritsar
grew. lf after accession, the period had to be very brief because Khusrau rebelled barely
six months after his accession. Thus, this again appears to be an attempt on Jahangir's
part of trying to please the orthodox sections.
It is clear that Jahangir took no action against the Sikhs as such, but only against Guru
Arjun on a charge that he had blessed Khusrau by putting a tika on his head, and by
giving him some money. lt has been argued on the basis of Jesuit and other evidence
including Sikh traditions, that Jahangir had not ordered the Guru's execution but only
134
imposed a heavy fine on him which he refused to pay, and that was due to the tortures
inflicted on him to realize the fine that he died. However, this does not exonerate
Jahangir from the charge of awarding excessive." punishment to a highly ,.respected
saint for an inadvertent mistake' His action in imprisoning the Guru's Son and successor'
Guru Hargovind' five years later for realizing the arear of the fine, and keeping him in
prison for two years, appears even less defensible.
Jahangir continued Akbar,s practice of inviting religious divines for personal
discussions. It seems that Jahangirs main area of religious interest was monotheism: lt
was this which made him seek the company of Main Mir, the famous Qadri sufi of
Lahore and a friend of Guru Arjun. Jahangir was arso devoted to Muinuddin Chishti, the
patron saint of the Mughals. ln 1613, when he visited Ajmer, he walked on foot for a
kos before entering the Shrine. He was hoqtile to Saikh Ahmad Sirhindi ;who
denounced Wahdatal-Wajud or monotheism.
As Jahangir says, he kept him for sometime in "the prison of correction until the
heat of his temperament and the confusion in his brain were some what quenched, and
the excitement of the people should also subside. The greatest satisfaction Jahangir
found was among vatories of vedant which he calls the science of tasawwuf'. In this
search, he met Jadrup Gosain at Ujjain in the eleventh year of his reign (1616)' During
the next three years, he met Jadrup seven times. Jadrup lived in a hole on the side of a
hill which had been dug out and a door made. Hearing of his reputation' Jahangir
wanted to call him to Agra,. but did not do so on account of the trouble it would cause
him. Jahangir went one-eighth of a kos or two and a half furlong on foot to see him.
Jadrup made a great impression on Jahangir by his knowledge and simplicity. Jahangir
says "he (Jadrup) had thoroughly mastered the science of vedanta", and "God Almighty
has given him unusual
intellectual power. He was free from the attachment of the world, so that "putting
behind him the world and all that was in it he sits content in solitude rand without
want'. Subsequently, Jadrup shifted to Mathura where Jahangir visited him twice. when
135
Hakim Beg, brother- in-law of NurJahan, who held charge of Mathura, ill-treated',
Jadrup' Jahangir dismissed him from service.
We do not know much about Jahangir;, personal religious beliefs' He remained
within the framework of islam. But had a good knowledge of other, religions, especially
Hinduism and Christianity. Though continuing to follow many Hindu practices which had
become common in lndia, he specifically rejected idolworship and, as we have seen' the
theory of incarnation. Jahangir had a very exalted opinion of Kingly duties. Echoing Abul
Fazl, he says that the just creator bestows sovereignty on him whom he considers fit for
this glorious and exalted duty. lt was therefore futile for the seditious and the shortsighted to try and deprive crown and dominion from one chosen by God the Grown cherisher.
However, despite his benevolence, the Mughal emperor remained a despot.
Liberalism and autocratic benevolence were underpinned by a policy of cultural
pluralism, enabling people of all religions and regions to contribute. These included not
only architecture and gardening, but music, painting, literature etc. The work of making
Persian translations of Hindu religious works, such as Ramayana, continued. Court
patronage was also given to Hindi poets. The new spirit was reflected in the Hindi
poems of Abdur Rahim Khan-l-Khanan in which verses on niti or polity was taken up,
along with a strong lyrical sense of devotion to God in his various incarnations,
especially Krishna.
Conclusion
There is much in his character that deserves to be condemned but there is a
great deal that entitled him to be placed among the most fascinating personalities of
lndian History (Beni Prasad). While he never inherited the intellect and political
intrepidity of his father nor his strength of Character or his singular determination,
nevertheless, the practical genius of Akbar was bound to impress the youthful prince.
Consequently, Jahangir was not only an excellent shot but an equally capable general
who could plan and lead military campaigns. He was equally ruthless in implementing
law and order and administration of Justice. A strange mixture of tenderess and cruelty,
136
his indulgence in mortal pleasure of life were well balanced by his passion for justice
and law for the people. He began his rule with the himself intertions of striving to
maintain the principles and dominions of his great father. However, his two inexcurable
defects namely his habitual and excessive intemperance and his willingness to vest the
reign, of the state government in Nurjahan married his honest effort to maintain the
principles and dominious of his great father.
Consequently, what ultimately emerge, is the image of a typical benevolent autocrat
whose political side "is interesting enough but its virtue lies in cultural development".
(Beni prasad) A strct connosieur of art and painting, he patroised the best painters of
the period like Abu-l-Hassan and Mans '. The tombs of Haod-Ud-Daula at Agra, Akbari
Mousolem at Sikandra and Jahangir's adequately reflect his impecable task and the skill
of his architects. He fully encourage the growth of Persian literature. His own
autobiography, Tuzuk-l-Jahangir is an extremely meritorious piece of literature while his
observations on flora and fauna of the various region, reflect an insatiable love for
scenic beauty.
Shahjahan (1627-1658)
3.3.0 Administrative and Religious Policy :Ala Azad Abdul Auzaffar Sahab ud Din Mohammed Khurram better known as
his
imperial name Saha Jahan, He was fifth Mughal Emperor who ruled from 1628
until 1658. At young age, he was chosen as successor to the Moghul throne after the
death of his father., Jahangir in 1627.He was considered
on of the
the
great Mohhul
prosperous age of Indian civilisation. Like Akbar, he was eager to expnd the vast
empire. In1658, he fell ill and was confined by his sonAurangzeb in Agra Fort until his
death in 1666.
137
After Jahangir death a misfortune came to the Moghul Empire., While Shahjahan
was away to Deccan, Nurjhan made a ultimate desperate bid to grab power by claiming
the throne for Shahriyan. Fortunately for Shahjahan, at this juncture, his father- inlaws, Asaf Khan came out in the open against his sister. . The rival forces of Shahriyar
and Daevar Bakrh, met at Lahore. At the very first attack, Shahriyar's forces fell back,
he himself of was blinded and confined to Prison.
Wading through the blood of his Kingmen, Shahjahan formally ascended the
throne on 6h February 1628 A.D. The Khutba was read in his name and Nurjahan was
politely asked to retire. All coins bearing her name were immediately withdrawn. Amidst
much display of regal. splendour, Shahahan proclaimed the commencement of a new
era.
At the time of his accession, the empire's structure had somewhat weakned.
Jahangir by his indecisive and feeble tendencies had inadvertently sown the seals of its
disintegration. Similarly, the worsening Mansabdari crises, gave fresh lease to the forces
of dissatisfaction amongst the nobility, who in times of civil war, displayed no sympathy
for the emperor and operly sided with contenders for the throne. So Shahjahan's
intentions towards the mpire and his subject, were above approach. In the true
tradition of his forfather, he devoted all his energies to the consolidation of the empire
and not even the minulest details of administration escapied his attention. The events
of Shahjahan's sovereignty can be divided in to following phases:Administration
1)Policy towards internal rebellion
2)Policy towards central Aria.
3) Deccan policy
4) Administration
5) Religious Policy
3.3.1 - Policy towards internal Rebellions(a) The Bundella Rebellion, 1628A.D.
138
Immediately after his coronation the Bundelas under their leader, Juhar Singh,
rebelled. The community had enjoyed a astounding rise of fortune under Jahangir, who
had profusely compensated the Bundela leader, Bir Singh Deva, for accomplishing Abul
Fazl's murder, Jahangirs over - indulgence, however, had emboldened the Bundelas.
When Shahjahan ascended the throne, far from sharing the same rapport with the
Bundela Chiefs, he remained suspicious of their motives. Consequently, when Jujhar
Singh, the new Bundela Chief, left the capital without the imperial permission,
Shahjahan became infuriated, ordered him to render adequate explanation for his
misconduct. Jujhar Singh, on the other hand, confident of his resacrces which had been
considerably extended by enormous wealth that he had recently inherited, as also fully
aware of the strategicat. impenetrability of his territory, decided to defy the Mughal
authority
Shahjahan,-equally
determined
for
fight,
ordered
massive
war
arrangements.
The Bundela territory was ordered to be surrounded by three armies commanded
by Mahabat Khan (Khan-I-Khanan), Khan-l-Jahan who, proceeded from Malwa and Firoz
Jung of Kanauj, who marched from Bunded Khand. Jujhar Singh who had never
anticipated the Mughal outrage on such a vast scale, was completely taken aback. His
efforts to secure peace, however, proved futile. ln the battle that ensued, Jujhar Singh's
fort was captured and over 2,000 of his men were slain. Forced into surrender, he was
required to submit 1,000 gold Muhars and forty elephants and 15 lakhs of rupees as
compliment. His Jagir was curtailed to a Mansab of 4,000 Jat, 4000 Sawar, and the
surplus was distributed amongst other loyal nobles. The settlement, however, failed to
establish tranquility everlastingly.
(b) Rebellion of Khan-l-Jahan Lodi, 1629
ln the first struggle for succession, Khan-l-Jahan Lodi, son of Daulat Khan Lodi, failed to
support Shahjahan. Later, however, on ascending the throne, Shahjahan had granted
Khan-l-Jahan the royal pardon and also conferred the Governorship of Deccan. But
unconfident of his intentions, the imperial orders soon recalled him to the court. ln
139
The Primary Mughal interest towards Central Asia was confined to the
intensification of the North west border.Thus, right from Babur to Shahjahan, the
occupation of Kabul and Qandahar was as much economically crucial and politically
essential to the Mughals, as the maintenance of a strong Persia that could counter the
Uzbeg and Ottoman ascendancy in Central Asia.
It would therefore, be unfair to term Shahjahan's Central Asian policy as
expansionist in nature for he too, like his forefathers; was guided by the imperial
interests to strengthen the borders.
Shahjahan's border policy had two objectives:
(a) To secure the possession of Qandhar which the Persians had re- occupied during
Jahangir's reign.
(b) The intensification of Kabul principality by creating trouble for the Uzbegs in their
dominions of Balkh and Bandakshan and if the opportunity arose to extend the Mughal
frontiers up to Badakshan that would also fulfill the Mughal homesickness of occupying
their ancestral lands.
Policy towards Qandhar
Although Shahjahan continued to exchange embassies with Shah Abbas, the
Shah of Persia, he throughout looked for a chance to recapture Qandhar,.Said Khan,
the governor of Kabul, was asked to re-coocquer the Qandhar region and futile
attempts were made to wean Ali Mardan, the Governor of Qandhar, from the Persian
region. Fortunately for the Mughals, a misunderstanding between Ali Mardan, the
Governor of Qandhar, from the Persian region, Fortunately for the Mughals, a misunder
standing between Ali Mardan and Shah Abbas, led the former to surrender the fort to
the Mughal forces in 1638 A.D. Ali Mardan was paid a lakh of rupees as compensation
and was later appointed the Governor of Kashmir and Punjab.
Shah Jahan, however, true to tradition, explained the incident as an 'occupation
of territory that was rightfully theirs" and hoped for a continuation of cordial relations
with the Persians, who felt furious but were unable to retaliate straight away. Moreover,
141
Shah Safi's pre- occupation in neighbouring states, his premature death in 16424.D.
and the helpless youth of Shah Abbas ll, helped the Mughals to retain Qandhar
uncontested for a number of years. Once, however Shah Abbs established peace with
the Sultans of Turkey and the Uzbegs, he concentrated his energies towards Qandhar.
Shahjahans failure in Balkh only strengthened his hands .in February, 1649 A.D his
army recaptured the fort of Qandhar. Shahjahan incensed with rage refused to see the
Persian envoy and made three desperate attempts to re-possess Qandhar.
The first blockade of over 60,000 Cavalry and 10,000 infantry was led by his
son, Aurangzeb, and Sadullah Khan, in 1649 A.D., The Emperor, in order to observe the
operations himself proceeded to Kabul.The extra - concessions offered to the troops
clearly indicate the growing reluctance of the imperial troops to fight in these areas
where they had to tolerate nonstop hardships. The Mughal divisions found the Persians
equally well entrenched and failed to make any movement. The imminent winter forced
the Mughal forces to raise siege, after a period of three months.
The subsequent blockade of Qandhar in 1652 A.D. accured again out of the
Emperors nervousness and Aurangzeb's resolve to recover his pride. This time the
Mughal forces were accompanied try matching powerful canon. Over two crores of
rupees were sanctioned from the imperial purse and Shahjahan himself proceeded to
Kabul. Aurangzeb, ably assisted by Sadullah Khan and Rustam Khan, began the siege in
May, 1652 A.D. The Persians, however, once again proved better in the adroit use of
artillery. The Mughals suffered heavy causalities. ln sheer desperation, they attempted
treachery but all in vain. The Second siege lasting for over two months also proved
futile and was deserted in spite of Aurangzeb's promise to win against all odds.
Shahjahan lost confidence in Aurangzeb and shifted him to Deccan. Dara was not put in
harge of Kabul.
The third siege of Qandhar was led by Dara in 1653 A.D. who in order to
humiliate Aurangzeb, was determined to secure victory. According to a centempory
author, lnayat Khan author of Shahajahanamah, the Mughal army comprised of over
70,000 cavalry and was accompanied by over 10,000 artillery; one crore of rupees were
142
endorsed as war expenses. The Mughal attacked the fort four times. Each time they
were confidently resisted by the Persians. Once again the Mughals suffered heavy loss
and the futile siege continued for over seven months. Ultimately, the meager supplies
of men and animals forced the Mughals to recede.
Effects -(a) It was a miserable manifestation on the military incompetence of
Mughals and resulted in an undeniable loss of the Mughals esteem at home and broad.
From this time onwards the Mughal Persian relations quickly deteriorated especially
during the tie of Aurangzeb who become increasingly possessed to persophohia and
their plans to attack India. The ceaseless losses suffered by the officers and the soldiers
robbed them of their self-confidence and made them reluctant in them to accept service
in the frontier region. This complicated the North West problem during Aurangzeb's
region.
Policy towards Kabul
Principality of Kabul
frontier. Since Babur's era however, the Mughals had realized the unfeasibility of
annexing the region to the Empire .so it assented to its virtual independence and
management from its own resources, as long as homage was paid to the Mughal
Suzerainty. However to make the Mughal hold more effective the Uzbeg interests had
to be clearly restrained. Economically, Badakshan was not an attractive sources of
revenue. Strategically, however, it constituted the outer defence for Kabul.
The Mughals, therefore, if they could not effectively possess the region of Balkh
and Badaklshan, could successfully create trouble and keep the Uzegs diverted from
Kabul "Against this background, Shahjahan's resolve to fortify the Kabul principality ary
and if the opportunity provided to move upto Balkh and Badakshan, can be logically
understood. The two Uzbeg invasions of Kabul in 1624 A.D. and 1628 A.D. respectively,
further convinced Shahjahan of the necessity that Badakshan should be occupied by an
ally.
143
the Emperor,s permission. ln his absence, the four military commanders turn by mutual
rivalries, further weakened the Mughal power.
ln 1647 A.D. Shahjahan sent Aurangzeb and Ali Mardan Khan to curb the
growing Uzbeg danger Aurangzeb also fought a brutal battle against Abbas Aziz.
Though the Mughals emerged successful, the campaign proved a tragic story of
devastation, ruin and death for the Mughals. Aurangzeb, aware of the limitations of
distance, poor means of communication and shortage of provisions, prevailed upon.
Shahjahan to settle for peaceful reinstatement of Balkh to Nazr Muhammad. After much
hesitation, Shahjahan ultimately gave consent to the settlement provided Nazr
Nuhammad treated himself as a vessal of the Mughal empire.
Effects- (1) The
positive result that accrued from the Balkh fiasco was that the
Uzbegs once and for all, were given such a fatal blow that during Aurongzeb's reign
they never attempted to invade Kabul. To this extent the primary objective of
Shahjahan was realized. Costing over 2 crores, the Transoxina campaign proved fatal to
the Imperial finances. Politically, too, it heralded the beginning of the end of the Mughal
glory for it was an acknowledgement of the Mughal limitations and weakness.
The Persians, taking advantage of the Mughal fascination, annexed Qandhar in 1648
A.D. The decline in the Mughal - Persian relations and the loss of Mughal glory
emboldened the North-West frontier tribes to create unrest on the borders that reached
unprecedented heights during Aurangzeb's reign. The loss of Qandhar and lack of
security on the North West borders resulted in a corresponding decrease of trade and
commerce. Gradually, the trade was weaned from the North-West passes to shoulth
lndia where treade was intiated through sea routes thereby causing an enormous loss
to the Mughal prestige and Mughal treasury.
3.3.3 Shahjahan's Deccan Policy Towards the latter part of Jahangirs reign, the Deccani Kingdoms had divided
into two typres of alliances.
(a) Mughals and Bijapur had signed an offensive and defensive alliance.
145
(b) Ahmadnagar and Golkonda formed the other group. The Mughals, however, had
been unable to solve the dilemma of maintaining their paramounty in Deccan without
getting involved in the ceaseless embroils of the Deccani State.
At Shahjahan's succession, however, the situation in Deccan seemed favourable
for the Mughals. On the one hand, the demise of Malik Ambar and lbrahim Adil Shah of
Bijapur, had left a vaccum which the Mughals could use to their advantage. Moreover,
Shahjahan's intimate knowledge of the Deccan Politics could now be effectively utilized
to pursue a more vigorious Mughal Policy in Deccan.
For the time being, Khan-i-Jahan, the Govemor of Deccan, unsure of the
outcome of the civil war and hastily restored peace with the ruler of Ahmadnagar. A
general agreement was signed according to which Balaghat was restored to
Ahmadnagar for a paltry sum of 3 lakhs. Khan- i-Jahan has been charged with treason,
for singing such a hasty agreement. Yet Shahjahan himself had entered into a similar
agreement with Malik Ambar against Jahangir. lf, therefore, Khan-i-Jahan followed suit,
it could not be termed as treason. Moreover, while the civil war was on it was
impossible for the Mughals to safegurd Balaghat from the Nizam Shahis for long. The
conclusion of an alliance, therefore, offered the best possible alternative. Shahjahan
himself viewed the agreement with leniency. On receiving Khan-i-Jahan's letter of
submission and a valuable peshkash, Shahjahan appointed him the Governor of Berar
and Khandesh and ordered him to recover the lost provinces. Only when the Mughal
attempts proved futile, Khan-i-Jahan was replaced by Murtaza Khan.
ln the absence of any fresh reinforcement from the North, the Mughals could not
advance in Burhanpur. Shahjahan now proceeded in person. ln 1629 A.D. the situation
ws precipitated by the flight of Khan-i-Jahan who sought shelter with Murtaza Nizam
Shah. They not only welcomed him but also gave him the charge of the very areas in
Balghat which the Mughals had earlier occupied.
At this juncture, Shahjahan was convinced that a more vigorous policy was
needed for the Mughal advance in Deccan and this concerned the extinction of
Ahmadnagar. Consequently, careful military and diplomatic preparation were made. An
146
army of over 50,000 was assembled. Over 20,000 troops were sent under Azam Khan
to Balaghat. An army of over 15,000 proceeded under Khaja Abul Hussain through
Nasik and Sanganare, while a third army under nasir Khan headed towards Telingana to
suppress Qutab-ut-Mulk.
Similtaneously efforts were made at the political front to formulate an alliance
with Bijapur. A partition of Ahmadnagar was formulated as follows (a) Bijapur was to be
assigned five forts along with their surrounding territory ie.e the entire southern
portions of Ahmadnagar including Sholapur.
(b) The northern area of Painghat was to be annexed to the Mughal empire.For the
Mughals, the accord was noteworthy for it marked a departure from their earlier policy
of refusing involvement in the Deccan politics and avoiding the extinction of
Ahmadnagar. Secondly, the coalition with Bijapur henceforth the formed the basis of
the Mughal policy in Deccan.
The alliance was severely opposed by a nucleus of powerful nobles at Bijapur
court led by Khwaj Khan, Murari Pandit and Randola Khan .They advocated the
continuation of Ahmadnagar as a buffer state against the Mughals. Prospects of
territorial gains, however, silenced them for the time being.The alliance was soon put to
test when the capture of Dharwal fort by the Mughals.It magnified into a bone of
contention between the two powers. Bijapur asked for its restoration for as per the
alliance it was assigned to them, Azam Khan, the Mughal commander distrustful of the
Bijapur army, refused to hand over the fort on the ground that Bijapur had rendered no
assistance in its capture.
ln 1631 A.D. the Mughal commander Asaf Khan laid siege to the fort of Bijapur.
But when the Mughals found that men and cattle were dying of hunger and the price of
grain had risen to one rupee per seer.Asaf Khan raised the siege after barely for
twenty days, The Bijapur tactics of devastating the country within the vicinity of the fort
were weakned by the Marathas. Asaf Khan was now replaced by Mahabat Khan.
147
to Bijapur and Golkonda to acknowledge the Mughal Suzerainty and abstain from
interfering in Ahmadnagar. ln case of their refusal, Shahjahan was determined to lauch
a vigorous offensive and had ordered the three imperial generals viz. Khan-i-Jahan from
Sholapur Khan Saman from lndapur and Khan- i-Duran from Bidar, to encircle the
country on all sides. The three commanders mercilessly plundered the country side till
Shah was forced to submit. Adil Shah was also forced to sign a peace treaty which
continued to guide the future Mughal. Adil Shahi relations till the final extinction of
Bijapur, fifty years later.
Results The ruler of Bijapur accepted the Mughal Suzerainty and promised to abstain from
interfering in the affirs of Ahmadnagar. The Ahmadnagar country was partitioned
between the two powers with Bijapur retaining fifty pargans, including the fort of
Parenda and yielding an income of 80 lakhs of rupees, with the assistance of Shahji
honsle, the Mughals also captured the western areas around Poona. When the Mughals
besieged and occupied the fort of Pursandar, its seemed a question of time before the
Nizam Shahis now confined to Dautatabad were extinguished. In sheer desperation, the
Nizam Shahis offered Sholapur to Bijapur. At this juncture, an anti - Mughal revolution
transpired at the Bijapur court. Mustafa Khan lost his influence, was deprived of Peshwa
and thown into prison. Khawas Khan, Murari Pandit and Rendola Khan, the opponents
of the Mughal alliance, now led the Bijapur politics.
As for the Nizam Shahi Court, Murtaza Nizam Shah under the influence of his
wife released Fath Khan whom they had earlier imprisoned and now appointed him the
Wazir. Fath Khan unlike his father Malik Ambar, was always pro-Mughal and was
convinced of the necessity of allying with the Mughals for the existence of the Nizam
Shahi Kingdom. ln order to appease the Mughals, Fath Khan even got rid of Murtaza
Shah and instead put Husain, a minor son o Murtaza Shah, on the throne.
Bijapur renedered a war tribute of 2 0
territory. Bijapur could no longer impose four lakh of Huns from Golkonda annually and
was to refrain from influence in the affairs of Golkonda. Both powers were to refrain
from employing the rebels of the other state. A special clause pertaining to Shahu
declared that he was neither to be entertained nor employed unless he abandoned all
the Nizam Shahi forts which he had seiged during the war. Both man and God were
made witness to the treaty which Shahjahan promised to adhere to.
Golconda - Shahjahan entered into a Similar alliance with Golkonda. Since Akbar's
reign, the Mughal relations with Golkonda had remained cordial with the exception of
the period when Golkonda had entered into a defensive and offensive alliance with
Malik Ambar. ln general, the Qutb Shahi Sultans had restrained from joining against the
Mughals. Shahjahan, however, in 1638A.D. had sent a list of complaints to Qutb-ul-Mulk
and ordered him.
(a) To suppress Shias He had heard that in his country (Golkonda) companions of
prophet were reviled, he should stop th.ese practices, punish the quilty ones or it was
Shahjahan's duty to attack the country".
(b) To send arrears of tribute
(c) To insert Shahjahan's name in place of Shah of Persia in the Khutba.
(d)To issue Silver and gold coins in Shahjahan's name.
(e) He promised to pay from the beginning of 9th regnal year "two lakh Huns against 8
lakh rupees very year.
(F) Out of the 4 lakh Huns which were earlier paid by Golkonda to Bijapur, now 2 lakhs
were to be paid to the Mughals as their due for their paramountcy in Deccan.
(g) To pay 8 lakhs as arreas of Peskhash out of thirty two lakhs which were due till the
end of the eighth year.
(h) The two powers promised mutual help against an invasion by Shahis.
The agreement, therefore, resembled a subsidiary coalition for while the Mughals
were to protect Golkonda from any invasion from Bijapur; Golkonda could not indulge in
150
any warfare against another Deccan power on its own. ln case in ever did so as in the
region of Carnatic and remnants of Vijayanagar empire, the Mughals were to receive
their share as the paramount power.
Significance
"The struggle for the country of Deccan which was going on for fifty years since
Akabar's time and which could not be terminated was now brought to a successful close
to the satisfaction of the grandees of the realm". A Lahori.
The treaties with Bijapur and Golkonda formed the basis of the Mughal - Deccan
relations for the next fifty years till Aurangzeb decided on their ultimate annexation t
the Mughal empire in 1685 A.D. The treaties ensured a comparatively larger period of
peace than ever before for both the Mughals and the Deccan State. Assured of peace
from the Mughals, the Deccani states diverted their energies towards the consolidation
of their Kingdoms and expanision towards southern lndia. Consequently, the period
between 1636-37 A.D. witnessed the rise of Bijapur and Golkonda to the Zenith of their
power and glory.
The Mughals too, for the first time, were able to concentrate upon the settlement
of the Deccan country which was now divided into two administrative units (a) Balaghat
included all countries south of Narbada and the total anticipated income was fixed at
three croves of rupees.
(b) Painghat which included the districts of Khandesh and Burhanpur and their total
incomes was estimated at two crorer and thirty lakhs.
(c) ln addition, the area acquired by Ahmadnagar Kingdom was supposed to yield a
crore of rupees annually.
During Aurangze's first vicroyalty of Deccan (July 1638 May 1644A.D) the Subash
of Deccan was divided into four provinces;
(a) Daulatabad with Ahmadnagar and other districts with its capital initially at
Ahmadnagar and tater at Daulatabad.
151
152
153
154
(a)
The Sultan agreed to pay one and a half crore of rupees as war indemnity and to
surrender to the Mughals the fort of Bidar, Kalyani and Parenda. Shahjahan, later
reduce the war indemnity by half a crore.
(b)
Aurangzeb was ordered to return to Bidar. So were the other Mughal officers
asked to return to their respective charge.
Criticism Shahjahan is blamed for having lost what Aurangzeb had nearly secured for the
Mughal empire. ln all probability, Shahjahan did not want to deviate from the traditional
Mughal policy to maintain supremacy, without getting involved in the direct
administration of the two Kingdoms of Bijapur and Golkonda. ln this way like Ala-ud-din
Khilji, he wanted the Mughal flag to fly dominant all over India, without any cumber
some responsibility that direct annexation would involve.
3.3.4 General Administration Traditionally, the period from 1628-58 A.D. has been described by both the
modern and the later historians, as denoting the Mughal empire at the height of its
glory with Shahjahan decipting the epitome of mediaval splendour and refinements
including the lavish, majestic building that Shahjahn built, referred to his reign as the
classical Age, when the institutions of the empire were working at its best'. (I. Habib)
The granderur of the empire has been equally brightly described by the contemporary
foreign travelers. Seemingly, therefore, Shahjahan like Jahangir proved an equitably
just and popular monarch, who continued the same pattern of administration which his
grand father Akbar, had initiated. Similarly, Shahjahan has been duly praised for
increasing the income of the state to an extent that "the Paragana that had yielded
three lakhs in Akbars reign, now yielded ten. The expenditure of foreign reigns was not
even one fourth of the cost of this reign, and yet the kind amassed a treasure which
would have taken years to accumulate under his predecessor". Rai Bhar Malin Luftal.
Tawarikh.
On the other hand, the foreign contemporary travelers like Peter Mundy and
Bernier, who traveled for in the interior of the country have severely condemned the
155
156
(a) On the one hand, the price-hike, necessitated an increase in Mansabdar's salaries so
that they could maintain sufficient military contingents. This however, involved an issue
of additional Jagirs.
(b) On the other hand, an in crease in the size and revenue from the
Khalsa involved a corresponding reduction in the issue of Jagirs and a reduction in the
Mansabdar's salaries.Shahjahan determined to augment the Khalsa income, preferred
to reduce the Mansabdar's salaries and lessened their military liabilities by introducing
the Mahawar scales or month ratios.
Moreland had pointed to the reduction of Salary in the Zat Rank by 25 to 30
percent as also nominal reduction in the Sawar Rank. The military liabilities of the
Mansabdars were also correspondingly reduced Hence,
(a) A man posted in his Jagir was to bring one-third of troops for marter.
(b) lf a mansabdar was posted outside jagir, then he was to bring one fourth of the
troops for marter.
(c) If a mansabdar was posted to Kabul or badakshan, then he was to bring only onefifth of the troops for marter.
ln order to solve the problem of the discrepancy between the Jama required and
the hasil received (actual payment). Shahjahan far from re-assessing the Jagir,
introduced the more convenient system of Month scales. The practice was not an
innovation for earlier, too, jagir had been granted for four to six months. The system,
however, was never practiced on such a large scale. The number of months by no
means denoted that the salary was for a corresponding period. lt only indicated the
difference between the Jama and the the hasil and correspondingly reduced the military
obligation of the Mansabdar. Thus, all those jagirs, where the Hasil proved equivalent to
the jama, were declared as Shasmah' or six monthly.
ln this way, Shahjahan achieved an increase in the Khalsa revenues which soon
began to yield a revenue of one crore fifty lakhs. While at Jahangir's death, the Khalsa
revenue was one fifteenth till in the last years of his reign and the beginning of
Aurangzeb's rule, it amounted to one-tenth of the total revenues.
157
158
Religion during ShahJahan was completely under the cotrole of the Emperor an d
displayed a marked intolerence towards the practice of any other
religion.However during the later period of his reign his religious intolerence
relaxed to a considerable
Shah Jahan exempted the theolagions from Sijda or Zaminbos, the former
implying postration before the ruler, and the latter putting both the hands on the
ground and touching them to the forehend. lt might be mentioned that Jahangir had
also exempted the high theologians from Sijda, Shah Jahan banned mixed marriages
between Hindus and Muslims in Kashmir which had implied that Muslim girls embraced
the religion of their Hindu husband, and vice versa. Earlier Jahangir had also banned
this practice, but unable to stop it.
Most significant step taken by Shah Jahan in the sixth Regnal year (1633) he
ordered that no temple whose foundation had been laid in Jahangir's time but had not
been completed would be allowed to be completd. Accordingly, 76 temples begun at
Benars were destroyed. Temples and Churches were also destroyed during the wars.
Thus during the Burdela rebellion Bir Sing Deo temple at Orcha was destroyed and a
mosque buit in its place. Christian Churches at Hugli were destroyed during the clash
with the pertuguse there.
Howeve it does not seem that Shah Jahan tried to implement seriously the policy
of not allowing near temples to be built. Thus, in 1629, he granted land to Shantidas,
the leading Jain Jeweller and banker at Ahmadabad, to built resting place, (poshata) for
jain Saints. He also built a beautiful Jain temple near Ahemabad. ln 1654,when
Aurangzeb was Governor of Gujarat, he converted this temple into a, mosque".
However on a complain from Shanitdas that Aurangzeb had flagrantly violated the
Sharia by usurping Shantidas property. Shah Jahan ordered the Mitrab to be blacked up
and temples restored. The imperial forman also commanded that any material taken
159
from the temptes should be restored and compensation paid for any material lost.
Likewise the magnificent temple built at Mathura by Bir Sing Deo Burdella during the
reign of Jahangir was not interfered with.
That Shah Jahan's bear on new temples was only a taken in conceded by l.H.
Qureshi, a leading historian in Pakisthan, saying that the measure was "more an
assertion of a principle than an effective measure (it) was more an effective declaration
that istam would again be treated as the dominant religion that an attempt at the
suppression of Hinduisim."
It has been argued that the building of many magnificient musque including the
Jama Masjit at Delhi and Taj Mahal at Agra was supposed to replicate the Muslim idea
of pradadise. It also demonstrated Shah Jahan's new emphasis on the power and
majesty of Istam. The building of such masques was no usushal. The broad tolerance
continued was also evident from his confirmation of the grants given to the Vaisnava
temples at Vrindavan. Even more significant was his order permitting the construction
of temples . A large number of God worshipping Hindu mendicants are engaged in
divine worship according to their own religion and custom. This was an affirmatain of
Akbar's policy of Sul-i-Kul.
The Muslim orthadox section rallied under Shaikh Abdul Haq of Delhi and Shaikh
Ahmed Sirhindi who was hailed as Mujadid or renovator during the second millennium
of Islam. Both of them were profound sceholars of Muslim jurisprudence, theology etc.
and laid great emphasis on strict implementation of Sharia. They also enrolled Student
in their seminars. From an analysis of their letters, it would appear that their demands
were.
(i) The humiliation of Hindus which implied breaking of temples, having no social
intercourse with them and denying them public service, and if that was inescapable, not
to trust them.
(ii)Revival of the Jizyah which was the mark of the superiority of the Muslims, and was
ment to humiliate the Kafirs, and (iii) Exclusion of all practices which were bidat, i.e. not
strictly within the ambit of the Sharia, whether they applied to culture (ban on music
160
and painting morality (ban on wine etc.) or social practices (tuladan, jharoka darshan
etc.)
Like Jahangir, Shah Jahan also rejected almost all these demands. Even the ban
on construction of new temples was not implemented strictly, as Aurangzeb found when
he was governor of Gujarat. The liberal elements came together under the slogan of
Wahdat-al-waiud or monism. The Chisti saints, and the Qadiri saint Main Mir of Lahore,
who was backed and supported by Dara and Jahanara, led this trend. Shahjahan did
not join either of these trends, even though some contemporary historianss gave his
the title of mujaddid or renovator of Islam. Nor did the nobles, as a whole, join either
the liberal or the orthodox group, remaining eclectic in their approach.
We may conclude that Shahjahan tried to effect a compromise, while formally
declaring the state to be an lslamic one, showing respect to the sharia, and observing
its injuctions in his personal life, he did not reject any of the liberal measures of Akbar,
such as jharoka darshan, weighing himself for gifts (tuladan) etc. like all compromises,
Shahjahan's compromise was based not on principal but on expediency. As such, it
satisfied no party, and the orthodox elements, feeling themselves to be stronger than
before, continued the demand of a state based on a strict implementation of the Sharia.
Conclusion :
Shahjahan, as long as the ruled, devoted all his energies to the consolidation of
the state interest. However, it would be gross exaggeration to piace his administration
as Kafi Khan has done, higher then Akbars for with all his ability; he locked the vision,
liberalism and welfare zeal of Akbar. He was replica of his time.
However, he combined the brilliance of soldiery with cultural refinements of the
age with rare acumen and apitomised the unprecedented prosperity of the Empire.
Even in prison, he conducted himself with ulmost dignity.
3.4.0 Administrative and religious Policy of Aurangzeb (1658-1707)
161
After having settled with his brothers, Aurangzeb acended the throne in July
1658. However the formal accession did not take place till June 1659. On the latter
occasion Aurangzeb assumed the title of Alamgir.
Early MeasuresThere was a tot of confusion in the country on account of was of succession. The
enormous armies of the Mughals damaged the crosps of the people on the way. The
tolls and taxes which had to pay already added to their difficulties and interfered with
the trade of the country. So Aurangzeb abolished Rahadari which was collected from
every highway. He also abolished the Pandari, or ground tax. About 80 cesses collected
from Hindus and Muslims were abolished. Aurangzeb provibited the Kalima on the coins
so that same may not be touched by the non-Muslims. He also abolished to intoxicants
abolished by the Holy Koran. Aurangzeb ordered
Khanquarh, lmamas and Muazzims were regularly paid. Strong measures were taken
against those Sufi who were the associates of Dara.
The period of Aurangzeb was traditionally divided into two phases; (a) The first
twenty-five years which he spent in the North and when peace prevailed over the
162
Deccan and South lndia. (b) The next twenty- five years until his death, however, he
had to spoil to the Deccan affairs.
Administration 1. Policy towards North-East and North - Western borders.
2. Religious Policy
3. Rajput Policy
4. Administrative infrastructure
5. Deccan Policy..
3.4.1 - Policy towards North -East and North - Western borders
The Frontier Wars
On the North -East Border, since 1639 A.D. there had been no chaos.
Shuja's
negligence of the Bengal administration and the waging of the civil war, had
encouraged the Ahoms (local residents) to reassert autonomy. Consequently, the
Assamese infringed the Mughal borders and even occupied Gauhati. The Mughals
engrossed in a civil war, remained helpless till 1660 A.D. when Aurangzeb appointed Mir
Jumla as the Governor of Bengal. One of the ablest trusted lieutenants or Aurangzeb,
he was ordered to 'Punish the lawless Zamindars of Arrakan. In 1661 A.D. Mir Jumla
occupied Kutch Bihar while
Mughals collected enormous booty. Mir Jumla would have continued with the warfare
but unfortunately was seized by the fever epidemic which had badly mutilated the
residents of Assam as also the Mughal army'. So peace was concluded hastily in
December 1662-A.D. According to Khafi Khan, the Raja agreed to pay 120,000 tolas of
silver 2000 tolas of gold and fifty elephants to the Emperor. He also agreed to
surrender all towns and forts that were captured by the Mughals. Mir Jamla,s untimely
death, in 1663 A.D. gave as serious setback to the peace. By 1667 A.D. under the
enterprising Chakradhwaj, the Ahoms soon recovered their lost possessions including
163
Gauhati. From 1670- 80 A.D., a series of weak rulers, once again titled the scales in
favour of the Mughals and by 1711 A.D., the Raja was forced to confirm the Mughal
seizure of Rangpur and western Kamrup districts.
Towards the North - western frontier,
Aurangzeb followed a forward policy out of political and economic considerations. The
turbulent Muslim tribes were always a source of danger and trouble to the Moghuls.
They were attracted by the riches of Punjab and their poverty forceds then to attack
India time and again.
The pathan tribes of Yusufzais and Afridis, from time to time, had threatended the
peace and security of the region. But never did they pose a more serious threat than in
1667 A.D. When under the able leadership of Bhagun, over five thousand of the
tribesmen, crossed the river lndus into Allock. Aurangzeb was equally determined to
quell the incursion. By october, 1667 A.D. Muhammad Amin-Khan, son of Mir Jumla,
reestablished peace on the frontier which lasted for a period of five years. ln 1672A.D.
the Afridis under the dynamic leadership of Ajmal Khan proclaimed war against the
Mughals and summoned ail the pathan clans to ioin the national movement. The
Mughal governor, Muhammad Amin Khan, however' underestimated the enemy
strength. Consequently, diaster struck the Mughal army when over 10 thousand of their
men were slain and' almost double the number wee imprisoned including the family of
the governor and ove two crore of rupees in cash and kind was looted by the enemy.
Aurangzeb, however, remained demoralized. Muhammad Amin Khan was replaced by
the more mature Mahabat Khan. Aurangzeb himself directed the operations from June,
1674 A.D. After a protracted fighting, the Mughals emerged triumphant. Diplomacy was
simultaneously resorted to and numerow presents, Jagiri and, offices were bequeathed
on the Pathans. From 1677 A.D., under the able guidance of Ami Khan a period of
comparative peace followed. A fear of their uprising, however always loomed large and
the Mughals had to leave a precious part of their troops to maintain the border security
164
- a fact which proved a serious handicap against Shivaji where every extra contingent
was a blessing for the Mughals :
3.4 .2 - Aurangzeb's Religious Policy
Religious policy of Aurangzeb was abased on the Islamic theory of
Kingship.Aurangzeb felt that he was superior to administer the empire in a better way
but also to protect and strengthen Islam particularly its sunny faith.He was a strict
follower of suni sect, to the extent that he percuted the member of the Shia sect.
Inorder to achive his objectives of strengthing Islam, he imprisoned his father, killed his
brother, forced his son Akbar to revolt and pass a miserable life.He also compelled the
Rajputs,the Jats, the Sikhs, and Narathas to rebel, destroyed the state of Bijapur and
Golkunda and imposed political, economic and social disability on the Muslim subjects
with a view to convert them to Islam. Aurangzeb belived that all the Moghul rulers who
ruled prior to Islam commited one blunder of not trying to establish the supremacy of
islam in India.He attempted for it during his life time becausehe beloved that it was the
formost duty of a Muslim king.
the latter in the country. 'The diligent utilization of the Hindu potential to the maximum
advantage of the Muslim ruler' may have differed from ruler to ruler, but the
impossibility of bringing about a total extermination of Hindusim was universally
recognized by atl. Against such background, as also keeping in view Aurangzeb's
brilliant political record under Shahjahan, it seems incocelivable and entirely irrational
that Aurangzeb, when a sultan, threw all political caution to wind and attempted to
establish a fanatic rule.
Reason, therefore, necessitates a logical interpretation of Aurangzeb's motives and
policies which were based upon (a) the personal religious views of the emperor, (b) his
policy towards the Ulemans and theologians who consistently endeavored towards the
creation of an Islamic state, and (c) his policy towards the non-Muslim subjects and the
handling of those issues which were primarily political in nature but involved certain
religious elements too.
(a)
By the 17th century, there main religious streams existed amongst the Muslims in the
country : (i) The progressives like Akbar and Dara Shikoh who believed in the universal
tolerance and considered all religions as different roads to the same goal. (ii) The
liberalists who; within the general frame work of the lslamic state, preferred to rule
according to the political exigencies of the state. Consequently, they kept state above
religions. Jahangir symbolized its best representation. Shahjahan, while adhering to its,
essentials, was more inclined towards orthodoxy, (iii) The orthodox, like Ahmad Sirhindi
who were bitterly opposed to all association of the Hindus with the Muslim state and
pressed for the procrastination of the Hindus.
Aurangzeb, since his childhood, had been brought up to be a good Muslim and
throughout his life, he remained a man of simple habits who sincerely abided by the
tenents of lslam. The ground towards orthodoxy was prepared by his father,
Shahjahan, who while continuing with the association and employment of the Hindus,
166
fanaticism,
Aurangzeb not only lost the perception of keepting religion away from polities but cam
eto view all political problems in the narrow parochial light.
167
(b) Policy towards the Ulemas -Aware of their views and strength, Aurangzeb
attempted to conciliate them by appointing Muhatsibs of public morals, and ordering
repairs of old mosques and Khankhas.
(c) Policy towards the Hindus -Aurangzeb also ordered a series of anti- Hindu
measures like the general destruction of temples in April, 1669 A.D. It included the
famous temples at Mathura, Beneras and Somnath, while his order of 1671 A.D.
affirmed that 'all rent collectors of crown land must be Muslims and Turkdar were to
dismiss the Hindu Peshkars and Diwans and replace them by Muslims. "This is also
corroborated by the court historian, Thus as' by one stroke of pen, Aurangzeb dismissed
the Hindu writers from his service. However, when Aurangzeb was advised the difficulty
of implementing,. the order was withdrawn the next day.
The Hindus also had to pay heavier custom duties and Jaziya was re-imposed in
1679A.D. The Hindu, except for the Rajputs and the Marathas, were prohibited from
wearing arms, fine dress and riding horses. They were also prohibited from holding fairs
and the Hindu learning was prescribed. The above mentioned measures, however, were
spread over a period of time and it would be a grave mistake, as some historians have
done in the past, to sumrise their conclusions on a few examples for just as a few
pronouncements can prove his fanaticism, an equal number of examples can be quted
to prove Aurangzeb's initial tolerance. Some of these are cited below
(i) According to Khafi Khan, the court historian, Aurangzeb as soon as he ascended the
throne, abolished eighty Awabs, levied from both the Muslims and the Hindus including
the Rahdari (a toll tax) and Pondari (a hose tax) and duty on corn.
(ii) Similarly, his correspondence with the dubious Raja jai Singh and his effort to win
over Raja Raj Singh of Mewar, clearly reflect his appreciation of the political significance
of the Rajputs. :
(iii) Ahkam-i-Alamgiri mentions Aurangzeb rebuking Mahammad Amin Khan in 1689
A,D. for suggesting the remova! of one of the two Hindu Bakshis and instead conferring
it on a Muslim.
168
(iv) In spite of Aurangzeb's order of 1664 A.D. regarding the general destruction of the
temples, there are Firmans found dated later, which gave grants for the running of
schools and temples. Bhinsen, writing towards the end of Aurangzeb's reign, has
mentioned numerous temples that flourished in Deccan. Similarly, Ishwar Das in
Futuhat-i-Alamgiri while rendering a chronological account of Aurangzebs reign has
mentioned various temples that existed in the country including the Sikh Gurdwara in
Dehradun for which a gate was provided by Aurangzeb.
The preceding arguments, however, in no way justify Aurangzeb's views or actions for
he was undoubtedly Pro-Islamic and more orthodox than any of his predecessors. The
re-im-position of Jeziya and the various discrimination against the Hindus, substantiate
his gradual reluctance to treat the Hindu subjects on an equal footing. Nevertheless, it
is essential to recognize that the transition from orthodoxy to fanaticism came over a
period of time. His reign reflects a constant struggle between politics and religion till
towards the latter half of his reign, pressed by the economic and politics and religion
title towards the latter half of his reign, pressed by the economic and political crises,
Aurangzeb restored to religion as the true cause of and remedy to solve all ills. This
proved his undoing.
The generally upheld views that Aurangzeb's religious persecution of Hindus
alienated the various sections of Hindu community who retaliated by resorting to arms.
The strength of Auragzebs administration was challenged at it very nerve centre
around Delhi by Satnami' the Jat and the Sikh uprising. Even though the number of
people involved in there uprisings was not large, they were significant because they
were popular in character. All of them were to a considerable extent the result of
religious persecution of Aurangzeb. They also showed that the Hindus were deeply
dissatisfied..
Conclusion:Whilst the anti-Hindu policy of Aurangzeb collectively with the mounting
economic and social pressure led the Hindu communities into revolt; it was Aurangzebs
169
total mistake to regard them as a religious conspiracy to under mine the might of the
Mughal empire and therefore, deserving of the utmost religious discrimination. The
religious remedy of the political ills, only convinced them of Aurangzeb's intentional
humiliation of the Hindus and further estranged than from Mughal Empire.
3.4.3 - Rajput Policy of Aurangzeb
Main Objectives of Aurangzeb
Aurangzeb grew sceptic about the faithfulness of the Rajputs as most of the Rajput
general took side wilh Dara in the succession war. Aurangzeb being an orthodor Sunni
could not rely on the Rajputs who were Hindus. He thought that in his attempt to turn
the country into an Islamic country the Chief resistance would come from the Rajputs.
The Rajputs were the pioneer Hindus. They had political and military powers. As such
they could give brave fronts against his plan of enforcing lslamic rule over the Hindus.
The Rajputs had sympathy for the Satnami rebels. A few Rajputs generals opposed him
openly. Jaswant Singh was an important Mansabdar in the Mughal court from the time
of Shah Jahan. He sided Dora Suko in the war of succession against him. Later, after
when he was defeated in the battle of Dharmat though Jaswant Singh showed
adherence to Aurangzeb's court was Jay Singh. Aurangzeb was suspicious of him too.
Aurangzeb apprehended stift resistance from them in his project to bring the semiindependent Rajput states under the fold of the Mughal empire. The great emperor
Akbar brought allegiance of these Rajput kings by letting them rule their Kingdoms in
exchange of accepting his Suzerainty. Aurangzeb followed Islamic principles of Kingship
and wanted to snatch away the Rajput King's territories and subjugale them.
Ralation with Jaya Singh :-
170
Aurangzeb sent Jay Singha, the King of Ambar, to the south to fight against
Shivaji. Jay Singha was successful in the struggle with Shivaji. He captured most of the
forts Shivaji and the latter was compelled to sign the treaty
persuaded Shivaji to comer to Delhi. Jay Singlha requested the emperor to treat Shivaji
with honour. But Aurangzeb disregarded Jay Singha's advice and maltreated Shivaji.
Then Aurangzeb sent jay Singha to Bijapur. There Jay Singh died an unnatural death
most probably by swallowing poisonn. lt was suspected that the emperor played a foul
in this case. This incident alarmed other Rajput nobles about Aurangzeb secreted
intentions.
Relation with Jaswant Singh
Next came the case of Jaswant Singh of Marwar. Marwar was a very powerful
autonomous state situated at the heart of Rajputana. Marwar had immence commercial
importance. It fell enroute the road from Delhi to Bombay port. Marwar could, if she so
wished, disconnect the trade route from Bomay to Delhi with least effort. All these
worried Aurangzeb. He waited for chance to swallow the Kingdom of Marwar. He sent
Jaswant Singh to Jamrud in the N.W. Frontier far away from Delhi. There Jaswant
singha died in 1678. As soon as Aurangzeb heard the news, he sent troops in haste to
capture the state of Marwar which was at that time without any one to protect.
Aurangzeb fortified his imperial rule at Marwar by appointing Fauzdars, Killadar and
other officials instantly. He appointed lndra Singh, a psychopant, the King of Marwar.
He issued orders to demolish all Hindu temples at Marwar and soon after he come back
to Delhi. He imposed jijia tax (12 April, 1670) on the Hindus long years after it was
withdrawn by Akbar.
This act of Aurangzeb aggrieved most of the Rajputs and they wanted to retaliate upon
him. While jaswant died his two wives gave birth two posthums brothers of which only
one survived. He was named Ajit singh. The Rajput Chiefs now appealed to Aurangzeb
171
to give back their kingdom in favour of Ajit Singh; but the emperor turned a deaf ear to
their request. He proposed to keep the baby Ajit in his heram till he got to age. Another
source of information on this issue states that Aurangzeb agreed to give back Ajit's
Kingdom if he was converted to Islam. At this critical situation a bold step was taken by
Durgadas, a faithful follower of Jaswant Singh. He rescued Ajit Singha and his mother
from the Mughal harem and returned to Marwar.
War with Mawar
This infuriated Aurangze greatly. He directed his three sons to attack Marwar
from three sides with their troops. The people of Marwar resolved to resist Mughal
aggression to their land even if it cost their lives. The Mughal army destroyed
numberless temples and replaced them by Mosques. Rana Ajit Singh's mother was a
daughter of Mewar's Sidodio royal family. During this crisis of Marwar she sought the
help of Raj Singha, the Rana of Mewar. Raja Singha could properly guess that as
Marwar was contiguous to his empire Aurangzeb would pounce upon Mewar to
subjugate it. The safety of Mewar rested on the freedom of Marwar. Secondly, Raj
Singha was further annoyed with Aurangzeb as he claimed 'Jijiya 'from Mewar. Tod's
'Annals of Rajputana' mentions a letter written by Raj Singha to Aurangzeb inl which he
gave ent to his anger against the Emperor's evil design of Jiziya imposition on the
Rajputs. Hence the Rana decided to take Marwar's side. Thus grew up a joint Rajput
resistance against Aurangzeb's reactionary policy.
War With Mewar
Aurangzeb could easily guess the Rana's motive. Without delay he attacked
Mewar and forestalled the Rana's designs to put up stiff resistance against the Mughals.
A huge army of 7000 was deployed to attack Mewar. Thinking it impossible to confront
such a big army Raj Singha abandoned his capital at Udaipur and retired to the hills.
The Mughal army occupied Chittore and Udaipur easily and demolished the temples
there. Thinking that Mewar was subdued Aurangzeb proceeded towards Ajmer with his
172
troops. He left Prince Akbar in charge of Chittore. Raj Singha then came out of his hides
and raided Mughal out posts and discontinue their supplies. Some of the Rajputs
surpprised Akbar's camp near Chittore one night and put many Mughals to death. Raj
Singha inflicted grave losses. Aurangzeb was compelled to come back from Ajmere. He
transferred Akbar to Manruar and gave Chittore in the Charge of Prince Azam.
Failure of the Revolt of Prince Akbar
This dishonor by his father upset Akbar. He revolted against his father. The Rajputs
(Sisodias and Rathors) took his side. ln the mean time the old king of Mewar took up
his father's mantle and fought against the Mughals. The Rajputs under Jay Singha
Supported Akbar in his endeavour to become emperor replacing his father. On 11
January 1681 Akbar declared himself to be the Emperor. He also declared, that
Aurangzeb to be anti-Islam and as such denied his authority as an empeor. He, along
with his Rajput followers, started an invasion against Ajmere where Aurangzeb was
encamping. At this critical juncture Aurangzeb, though stunned by the blow delivered
by his favourite son, did not lose presence of mind. He resorted to a cunning diplomacy
to dissociate Akbar from the Rajputs. He wrote a letter to Akabr commending him for
successfully implementing the emperor's stratagem of first earning the faith of the
Rajputs and then to crush them by the imperial troops and his own. This letter was
purposely dropped near the Rajput camp. When the substance of the letter was known
the Rajputs left Akbar's side. The confused Prince was afraid of his life . He took help
from Durgadas and sought political asylum to Shamhhaji in the south. Later
Aurangzebs trick was revealed to the Rajputs. Prince Akbar ultimately took refuge at
the court of the Persian King.
Treaty with Mewar
Aurangzeb got nothing from his long standing struggle with the Rajputs. ln the
year 1681 he made peace with Jay Singha, the king of Mewar by a treaty (1) The
Mughal army left Mewar. (21The Maharana ceded the Parganas of Madal, Pur and
bednor in lieu of the Jaziya imposed on him. (3) The emperor appointed the Maharana
to the mansab of 5,000 and confirmed him in the territory with the title of 'Rana'.
173
Marwar, however was not prepared to make peace and it remained at war with the
Mughal emperor for twenty seven years more. After the death of Aurahgzeb, Ajit Singha
established himself finally as the Maharana of Marwar and in 17O7 he was given
recognition by Bahadur Shah- the then Mughal emperor.
Result of Rajput War
The Rajput War alienated the sympathy of the loyal Rathor and Sisodia clans from the
Mughal throne. According to Sir J.N. Sarkar. The Results of Rajput war was disastrous
to the empire.Hundreds of lives were sacrificed in the deserts of Rajputana for nothing.
This war diminished the prestige of the empire and damaged men and material to a
great degree. Aurangzeb's imprudent policy deprivde him of the loyal services of the
Rajputs warriors which he needed badly to fight against the Marathas in the sought and
the Afghans in the north western frontiesr. As the emperor was engaged in futile war
with the Rajputs in the North the Southern rulers enhanced powers. The Marathas
specialty took full opportunity of the situation. Aurangzeb's narrow vision and religious
bigotry led him to break the pillars on which the empire rested for more than a century.
3.4 .4 - Administration of AurangzebAurangzeb's administration, it seems that in no way deviated from that of his
forefathers, including Akbar. Extremely conscientious and fully aware of the grave
responsibilities of his office, Aurangzeb, gifted with an untiring spirit of body and mind,
attempted to live up to the ideal of Muslim Kingship. Nothing escaped his eye and the
minutest details of administration were referred to the Sultan. An enthusiastic dispenser
of justice, he treated the Royal Princes and his subjects alike and strictly adhered to the
rule of law. As he himself Put it "sovereignty signifies protection of the people. lt is the
repose and prospects of my subjects that it behaves me to consult; nor are these to be
174
sacrificed to anything besides the demands of justice, the maintenance of the royal
authority, and the security of the State.
Moreover, under him for the first time, the Mughal empire spread over the whole
of lndia and he, determinedly, kept a hawk like vigil on the affairs of the vast realm. lt is
ironic, therefore, that inspite of his complete adherence to the system of administration
as originated by his forefathers, Aurangzeb proved a failure.
The reasons are not far to seek. ln his blind devotion to implement the rule of
law, Aurangzeb unconsciously ignored the spirit of the law and thus his very zeal
proved his undoing. Moreover, certain glaring malpractices had crept into the Mughal
administration; even .before Aurangzeb ascended the throne.
Firstly, the Mansabdari system which formed the basis of the Mughal admlnistration,
having outlived its utility. It had degenerated into corruption and an inefficient system
that impaired the solidarity of the Mughal army and the state. The rise in prices, the
accelerated growth of Mansabs without a proportionate increase in the jagirs, the
constant dilemma of increasing the Khalasa revenues at the expense of the jagirs and
the consequent growth of unemployment were glaring abuses Aurangzeb The decay
had set in Jahangirs time but the ruler seemed to have had no alternative for the
Mansabdari system. Consequently, while theoretically the Mansabdari system retained
its original characteristics as under Akbar; in reatity, the no-adherence to the principle
of 'maintenance of troops according to Zatt /Sawar rank' and the introduction of the
'Mahawar System' robbed the practice of muster of its discipline and' efficiency.
Moreover, the Emperor faced with the paradox of increasing the Khalsa revenues (on
the one hand it meant, bringing more land within the imperial fold and appeasing the
nobility on the other), had no choice but to declare that only one fouth of the troops
was essential for muster. The frequent transfers of jagirs made confusion worse
confounded for with no security of their tenure. Tthe Mansabdars never bothered about
the welfare of the peasants and were inclined to extreact the maximum amount in the
175
shortest possible time. The Mansabdari crisis also engendered a scarcity of jobs and the
rapid growth of unemployment amongst the Muslims made the Hindu majority in the
revenue services of the state appear as a monopoly. Consequently, Aurangzeb's firman
of "putting all Hindus aside was not merely an outcome of religious persecution but
probably was meant to redress the Muslim grievance and even when the
impracticability of the firman was pointed out to Aurangzeb. He limited the Hindu
employment to 50 percent. Similarly, the lot of Peasantry at the time of his accession
was far from satisfactory. Shahjahan's policy of securing the highest Khalsa revenues
was unfortunately unaccompanied by a strict enforcement of discipline amongst his
officials.
Consequently, with the best of intentions, Shahjahan failed to implement any land
reforms largely because of the reigning corruption and nepotism of the official
hierarchy.
When Aurangzeb ascended the throne, he was fully aware of the economic hardships of
the people and at once ordered the abolition of over eighty Aawabs, and thereby
relieved the traders and the peasants alike. Unfortunately, the order was not followed
by a rigid implementation a chronic weakness of the administration. This is
corroborated by the court historian Khafi Khan, who referred to the continuation and
collection of these forbidden dues by selfish local officers. "when reports reached the
government, of infractions of these orders (the offenders) were punished with a
diminution of Mansab.... After a while, the offenders through their patrons or the
management of their agent got their Mansabs restored to its original amounts. So the
regulation for the abolition of most of the imports had no effect. Similarly, his revenue
regulations clearly ordered the officers to refrain from charging more than the specified
amount (50%) and practice benevolence towards the cultivators. So that they may be
encouraged into securing the maximum yield. ln case of emergencies and calamities,
the cultivators were to be extended loans and granted remissions. Those Amirs and
Kroris (revenue collectors) who served sincerely, were to be rewarded just as those
176
quilty of infringing the royal orders, were to be severely punished. The officers were
also emphatically told to be regular in their records, just and honest in their assessment
and humane in collection.
But, in reality, the situation was radically different" The Mughal Mansabdars and the
Subordinate officers were so adapted to corruption that they openly infringed the royal
commands and got away. This leads to two conclusions (a) either Aurangzeb was too
generous and vacillating so that his officers exploited these sentiments to their utmost
advantage. (b) The Mughal empire had become too vast and its administrative
machinery too inefficient .corrupt and outdated. Consequently, an irreparable decay and
apathy had set in which unless totally eradicated could never be effectively dealt with. lt
also demanded a dynamic and far sighted monarch, who free from any parochial,
religious and political fetters, could view each and every issue on its own merit and
unhesitatingly adopt radical reforms.
3.4.5 DECCAN POLICY OF AURANGZEB
Decan policy of Aurangzeb had political as well as religious consideration. The extension
of the empire was also one of the purpose of Aurangzeb.It is belived that the extinction
of the state of Bijapur and Golkunda was a prior necessity for the destruction of the
power of the Maratha in the Deccan. Besides this political motive, he desired the annex
these states because their rulers were Shias.Therefore, Aurangzeb was not satisfied
simply by acceptace of his suzernity by them but he desired to annex them to the
Moghul empire.
Conquest of Bijapur (1686)
Sikandar Adil Shah was the ruler of Bijapur. His weakness lay in his youth. ln 1682, an
expedition was sent against him under Prince Azam, but the same failed and Prince
was called back. For two years, Aurangzeb was busy against the Marathas and Prince
Akbar. This period was utilized by the ruler of Bijapur in re-organizing his army with the
177
help of Sharza Khan, his minister. Aurangzeb demanded the dismissal of Sharza Khan.
As his order was not complied with,' he proceeded against the King in person and
besieged Bijapur in April 1685. A breach was made in the fortifications of the city. lt is
true that the garrison fought very bravely and the Marathas also tried to help the
People of Bijapur, but the Siege could not last long. The city of Bijapur fell in September
1686. Sikandar Adil Shah was captured and made a prisoner. His kingdom was annexed
in 1686 and he himself was taken into the Mughal service. He was made a Mansabdar
and followed a pension of is. One Lakh. Later on, he was imprisoned in the fort of
Daultatabad where he died in 1700.
Conquest of Golconda (1687)
Abdul Hasan was the ruler of Golconda and he was not in the good books of
Aurangzeb. The cause of Aurangzeb's annoyance was not only the Shia religion of the
ruler but also the employment of Hindus in his Kingdom. During the Mughal invasions of
Bijapur under Jai Singh in 1665-66, under Dilir. Khan in 1679 and under Prince
Muhammad Azam in 1686, the Sultan of Golconda had openly set his troops to assist
his brother in distress" The first two wrongs were condemned by the payment
of
tribute.. Moreover, the sultan of Golconda had helped Shivaji with the sinews of war
after his flight from Agra in 1666 and thus enabled him to recover his forts from the
Mughals. He also welcomed Shivaji on his visit to Hyderabad in 1677 and behaved like a
humble vassal of Maratha King, placing a necklace of gems round his horse's neck and
promising him in annual subsidy of one lac of Huns for the defence of his territory. He
made Madanna and Akkanna, two Brahmins, his Chief Ministers. Aurangzeb himself
explained the causes of the war in these words'. The evil deeds of this wicked man
passed beyond the bounds of writing, but by mentioning one out of a hundred and a
little out of much, Some conception of them may be formed. First placing the reins of
authority and government in the hands of vile tyransical infidels; oppressing and
afflicting the Saiyids, Shaikhs, and other holy men; openly giving himself up to
178
fidelity that he appointed cne of his surgeons to cure him. Khafi Khan has given the
following account of his brave man. "Abdur Razzak Lari heard this and, Springing on
horse without any saddle, with a sword in one hand and a Shietd in the other, and
accompanied by loor 12 followers, he rushed t the open gate through which the
imperial forces were pouring in. Although his followers were dispersed, he alone like a
drop of water falling into sea, or an aton of dust struggling in the rays of the sun, threw
himself upon the advancing foe, and fought with inconceivable fury and desperation
shouting that he would fight to death for Adul hasan. Every step he advanced,
thousand of swords were aimed at him, and he received so many wounds from swords
and spears that he was covered with wounds from the crown of his head to the nails of
his feet. But his time was not yet come, and he fought his way to the gate of the citadel
without being brought donw. He received twelve wounds upon his face atone, and the
skin of his fore head hung down over his eyes and nose. One eye was severely
wounded and the cuts upon his body seemed as numerous as the stars. His horse also
was covered with wounds and reled under his weight, so he gave the reins to the
beast, and by great exertion kept his seat. The horse carried him to a garden called
Nagina, near the citadel, to the foot of an old cocoanut tree where by the help of the
tree, he threw himself off; On the morning of the second day, a party of men belonging
to Husaini. Beg passed and recognizing him by his horse and other sings, they took
compassion upon him and carried him upon a bedspread to a house. When his own
men heard of this they came and dressed his wounds.
According to Lane Poole, "With the conquest of Golconda and Bijapur, Aurangzeb
considered himself master of the Deccan. Yet the direct result of his destruction of the
only powers that made for order and some sort of settled government in the peninsula
was to streng then the hands of the Marathas. The majority of the vanquished armies
naturally joined the Marathas and adopted the calling of the road. The local officials set
themselves up as petty sovereigns, and gave their support to the Marathas as the party
most likely to promote a golden age of plunder. Thus the bulk of the population of the
two dissolved states went to swell the power of sambhaji and his highlanders, and the
180
disastrous results of this revolution in Deccan politics were felt for more than a
century. The anarchy which desolated the Deccan was the direct forerunner of the
havoc wrought by the Maratha in Delhi in the time of Shah-Alam and Wellesley."
Aurangzeb and the Marathas
Suffice it to say that Aurangzeb sent Shayista Khan against Shivaji in 1663, but
the latter failed to restrain him and with great difficulty escaped with his life. Later on,
Prince Muazzam and Raja Jai Singh were sent against Shivaji. Jai Singh forced Shivaji to
Sign the treaty of Purandhar in 1665. Shivaji attended the Mughal court at Agra in
1666. Although he was placed under detention, he managed to escape to his
headquarters in the Deccan. Prince Muazzam and jaswant Singh were sent against him.
After the death of Shivaji in 1680, Aurangzeb carried on the struggle against
Sambhaji. The latter was arrested and put to death. His son, Sahu, was put in prison
where he remained till 1708.
After the execution of Sambhaji in 1680, the struggle was carried on by Raja
Ram up of 1700. After his death, the same struggle was successfully carried on by his
widow, Tara Bai. lnspite of his best efforts, Aurangzeb failed to crush the Maratha
resistance. He had completely failed in his mission.
About Aurangzeb, war against the Marathas, Dr. K. M. Panikkar says that for about 20
years, the Emperor chased his own shadow. He marched up and down, attacked and
conquered fortress but the Maratha restistnace became stronger as years went by. lt
was a national at war against an enemy. The Maratha comapign became what the
Spanish campaign was to become for Napoleon, A running sore where his superiority in
almost every calculable factor counted for nothing against a country in arms. After a
arduous campaign led by the Emperor in person against Maratha strongholds, lasting
for over 6 years, Aurangzeb came back a broken and defeated man and died. The
Marathas had not only not been put down but were in effective possession of a great
territory and had attained massive national reputation by then triumphant resistance.
Consequences of the Deccan Policy of Aurangzeb
181
The Deccan policy of Aurangzeb had far- reaching consequences. lf Napoleon could say
that "lt was the Spanish ulcer which ruined me", Aurangzeb could also say that the
Deccan wars not only undid his own work but also those of his predecessors. It was
foolish on the part of Aurangzeb to have conquered the states of Bijapur and
Golconda. lt is true that their rulers were Shias, but Aurangzeb out to have
subordinated his religious zeal to statesmanship. Anyhow, the annexation of Bijapur and
Golconda destroyed the check on the Marathas. It was difficult for Aurangzeb to deal
with the Marathas from so distant a place" as Delhi. No wonder, he had to spend the
rest of his life in the Deccan to subdue the Marathas. On account of his absence from
the North for a quarter of a century, the administration of the country was thrown out
of gear. The provincial governors and Faujdars defied the central authority and there
was nothing to curb them. lt was during this period that the Jats and Sikhas got an
opportunity to strengthen their hands.
The operations of the lmperial armies, especially the numberous sieges, led to the total
destruction of forests and grass. The huge Mughal forces, totaling 1,77,000 including
non-combatants, ate up everything green. The Maratha raiders destroyed whatever
they could not carry The total deforestation injured agriculture. The power of resistance
of the common man was weakened on account of the long duration of war. Everything
they produced stored up was swept away by the hordes on both sides. The result was
that when famine or drought came, the peasants and landless labourers perished
helplessly like files.
Referring to the Deccan, Bhimsen, a noted historian of Aurangzeb, says. 'All
administration has disappeared - the realm has been desolated, no body gets justice,
they have been utterly ruined. The ryots have given up cultivation; the jagirdars do not
get a penny fro the fiels. Many mansabdars in the Deccan, starving and impoverished,
have gone over to the Marathas". The economic situation of the Mughal empire became
so feeble that it was on the verge of bankruptey. Hundreds of soldiers and several
officers fell into arrears for three years. The starving men created scenes in the court of
182
the Emperor. Although the government made reckless promises of money grants, it was
humanly impossible to fulfil them.
Aurangzeb spent huge amounts on bribing the Maratha officers in charge of hillforts. lt was impossible for the Mughal treasury to meet all the demands.
The spirit of the Mughal army in the Deccan was utterly broken. Soldiers grew sick of
the endless and futile war. Even the most rusted officers of Aurangzeb became home sick. One such nobleman offered the Emperor a bribed of Rs. 1 lakh for transferring him
to Delhi.
Sir Jadunath Sarkar has made the following observation with regard to the effects of
the Deccan Wars. "all seemed to have been gained by Aurangzeb now but in reality all
was lost." The sabdest and most hopeless chapter of his life now opened. The Mughal
Empire had become too large to be ruled by one man or from one Centre. His enemies
rose on all sides; he could defeat but not crush them for ever. Lawlessness reigned in
many parts of Northern and Central lndia. The old Emperor in the for off Deccan lost all
control over his officers in Hindustan. ln the province of Agra in particular, there was
chronic disorder. Art and learning decayed at the withdrawal of imperial patronage; not
a single grand edifice finely written manuscript or exquisite picture commemorates
Aurangzeb's reign. The endless war in the Deccan tired his treasury. Napoleon used to
says, lt was the spanish ulcer which ruined me'. The Deccan ulcer ruined Aurangzeb!
Effects
Aurangzeb has been vehemently crticiesed for his Deccan policy. Politically, it His
long stay in Deccan gave a big blow to the administration of the north and let loose the
centrifugal forces.Aurangzeb's long absence from the north resulted sudden breakdown
of administration which had been evolved over the conturies. Therefore, while the
Deccan did prove a tremendous strain on the Mughal empire, there were other factor,
of political, economic, religious and social nature, which rapidly
183
imperial
exchequer. ln six months, he spent thirty lakhs from the imperial treasury apart from
one crore of rupees that Jai Singh had spent on his own. At Aurangzeb's death, the
Agra treasury barely possessed thirteen crores while Akbar had left over twenty crorers.
Causes of Aurangzeb Failure
Aurangzeb in spite of his ideals and dedication, failed to resolve the crux of the
issue. A dedicated Sultan and Muslim, his ideals of Kingship was circumscribed by the
tenents of the Shariyat of living Saint, he never deviated from the tenents of lslam. But
while ideally suited for a theocracy, Aurangzeb proved temperamentally unfit to rule
over a subcontinent where racial diversity of caste and creed, required a ruler of Akbars
lofy vision, liberatison and tolerance, to unite the scattered elemants into a political
whole. With all his intrepidity, devotion, excellent physical and mental faculties and a
long reign of over sixty years, Aurangzeb could have overhauld if not totally eradicated
the degenerative process of the Mughal administration machinery. Yet when he left, the
empire , it was in uncertain state of affairs.
The success of the revolts, then, given the complexities of their genesis and the nature
of ambition of their diverse leaders, could not lead to the creation of army new order in
the place of the empire that they helped to destroy. ln the period that followed, the
gates were opened to anarchy and colonial conquests.
Aurangzeb died in 1707 and before his death he left a will by which he partitioned the
empire among his three sons. Inspite of this , a bitter fratricidal war took place among
three sons of Aurangzeb.No body cared for for the will of the father.Muazzam was the
eldest son of Aurangzeb and he was the ruler of Kabul and Punjab. Mohammed Azim
was the second son and was ruler of Gujrat and Malwa.Kam Bakas was the third and
he was the ruler of Deccan.
Price Muzzam heard then news of the death of his father while he was in Jamrud in
Afganisthan he rushed to Delhi to contest for the throne. He was assisted by Munim
Khan. His second
and thus to satisfy them fulty. He also did not recognize Shahu as the rightful Maratha
king. He thus let Tara Bai and Shahu fight for supremacy over the Maratha kingdom.
The result was that Shahu and the Maratha Sardars remained dissatisfied and the
Deccan continued to be a prey to disorder. There could be no restoration of peace and
order so long as the Maratha Sardars fought one another as well as fought against the
Mughal authority.
Bahadur Shah had tried to conciliate the rebellious Sikhs by making peace with Guru
Gobind Singh and giving him a high mansab (rank). But when after the death of Guru,
the Sikhs once again raised the banner of revolt in the Pubjab under the leadership of
Banda Bahadur, the Emperor decided to take strong measures and himself led a
compaign against the rebets, who soon controlled practically the entire territory
between the Sutlej and Jamuna, resching the close neighborhood of Delhi. Even though
he succeeded in capturing Lahgarh, a fort built by Guru Gobind Singh north-east of
Amballa at the foothills of the Himalayas and other important Sikh strong holds, the
Sikhs could not be crushed and in 1972 they recovered the fort of Lohgarh.
Bahadur Shah conciliated chatarsal, the Bundela chief, who remained a loyal
feudatory and the Jat chief churaman who joined him in the campaign against Banda
Bahadur.
There was further deterioration in the field of administration in the field of
administration in Bahadur Shah's reign. The position of state finances worsened as a
result of his reckless grants of jagins and promotions. During his reign the remnants of
the Royal treasure, amounting in 1707 to some 13 crores of rupees were exhausted.
Bahadur shah was groping towards a solution of the problems besetting the
empire. Given time, he might have revived the imperial fortunes. Unfortunately his
death in 1972 plunged the Empire once again into civil war.
A new element entered Mughal politics in this and the succeeding wars of
succession. White previously the contest for power had been between royal princes and
the nobles had merely aided the aspirants to the throne, now ambitious nobles became
direct contrndens for power and used princes as mere pawns to capture the seats of
186
authority. ln the civil war following Bahadur Shah's death, one of his less able sons
Jahandar Shah, won because he was supported by zulfiqar khan, the most powerful
noble of the time.
3.5.2 Jahandar Shah
Jahandar Shah was a weak and degenerate prince who was wholly devoted to
pleasure. He lacked good manners and dignity and decency.
During Jahandar Shah's reign, the administration was virtually in the hands of the
extremely capable and energetic zulfiqar khan, who had became his wazir. Zulfiqar
Khan believed that it was necessary to establish friendly relations with the Rajput rajas
and the Maratha Sardars and to conciliate the Hindu chief tains in general in order to
strengthen his own position at the court and to save the empire. Therefore, he rapidly
reversed the policies of Aurangzeb. The hated jizyah was abolished. Jai Singh of Amber
was given the titte of Mirza Raja Sawai and appointed Governor of Matwa, Ajit Singh of
Marwar was awarded the title of Maharaja and appointed Governor of Gujarat. Zulfiqar
Khan confinned the earlier private arrangement that his deputy in the Deccan, Daud
Khan Panni, had concluded with the Maratha king Shahu in 1711. by this arrangement,
the Maratha ruler was granted the Chauth and Sardeshmukhi of the Deccan on the
condition that these collections would be made by the Mughal officials and then handed
over to the Maratha officials. Zulfiqar Khan also conciliated Churaman Jat and
Chhatarsal Bundela only towards Banda and the Sikhs he continued the old policy of
suppression.
Zulfiqar Khan made an attempt to improve the finances of the Empire by
checking the reckless growth of jagirs and offices. He also tried to compet the
mansabdans (nobles) to maintain their official quota of troops. An evil tendency
encouraged by him was that of ijarah on revenues farming. lnstead of collecting land
revenue at a fixed rate as under Todar Mals land revenue settlement, the Government.
began to contract with revenue farmers and middlemen to pay the Government a fixed
amount of money white they were left free to collect whatever they could from the
peasant. This led to increased oppression of the peasant.
187
Many jealous nobles secretly worked against Zulfiqar Khan. Worse still, the
Emperor too did not give him his trust and cooperation in full measure. The Emperor's
ears were poisoned against Zulfiqar Khan by unscrupulous favourities. He was told that
his wazir was becoming too powerful and ambitious and might even overthrow the
Emperor himself. The cowardly Emperor dared not dismiss the powerful wazin, but he
began to intrigue against him secretly. Nothing would have been more destructive of
healthy administration.
Jahandar Shah's inglorious reign came to an early end in January 1713 when he
was defeated at Agra by Farrukh siyar, his nephew.
3.5.3Farrukh Siyar
Farrukh Siyar owed his victory to the Saiyid brothers, Abdullah Khan and Husain
Ali Khan Baraha, who were therefore given the offices of Wazir and Mir Bakshi
respectively the two brother soon acquired dominant control over the affairs of the
state. Farrukh Siyar lacked the capacity to rule. He was cowardly, crude, undependable
and faithless. Moreover, he allowed himself to be influenced by worthless favorites and
flatterers.
Inspite of his weakness, Farrukh Siyar was not willing to give the Saiyid brothers
a free hand but wanted to exercise personal authority. On the other hand, the saiyid
brothers were convinced that administration could be could be on properly, the delay of
the Empire checked and their own position safeguarded only if they wielded real
authority and the Emperor merely reigned without ruling. Thus there ensued a
prolonged struggle for power between the Emperor Farrukh Siyar and his Wazir and
Mirbakshi year after year the ungrateful Emperor intrigued to overthrow the two
brothers; year after year, he failed. ln the end, in 1719, the Saiyid brothers deposed
him and killed him. ln his place they raised to the throne in quick successior two young
princes who died of consumption. The Saiyid brothers now the 18 year old Muhammad
Shah the Emperor of lndia.
188
The three successors of Farrukh Siyar were mere puppets in the hands of the
Saiyids. Even their personal liberty to meet people and move around was restricted.
Thus, from 1713 until 1 72O, when they were over thrown, the Saiyid brothers wielded
the administrative control of the state.
The Saiyid Brothers
The Saiyid brothers adopted the policy of religious toleration. They believed that
lndia could be ruled harmoniously only by associating Hindu chiefs and nobles with the
Muslim nobles in governing the country. Again, they sought to conciliate and use the
Rajputs, the Marathas and the Jats in their struggle against Farrukh Siyar and the rival
nobles. They abolished the jizyah at once after Farrukh Siyar's accession to the throne.
Similarly, the pilgrim tax was abolished from a number of places. They won over to
their side Ajit Singh of Marwar, Jai Singh of Amber and many other Rajput princes by
giving them high positions of influence in the administration. They made an alliance
with Churaman, the Jat chieftain. ln the later years of their administration they reached
an accord with king Shahu by granting him the Swarajya (of Shivaji)and the right to
collect the Chauth and Sardeshmukhi of the six provinces of the Deccan. ln return,
shahu agreed to support them in the Deccan with 15,000 mounted soldiers.
The Saiyid brothers made a vigorous effort to contain rebeilions and to save the Empire
from administrative disintegration they failed in these tasks mainly because they were
faced with constant political rivalry quarrels and conspiracies at the court. This
continued friction in the fuling and conspiracies at the court. This continued friction in
the ruling circles disorganized and even paralysed administration at all levels.
Landlessness and disorder spread everywhere the financial position of the state
deteriorated rapidly as zamindars and rebellious elements refused to pay land revenue,
officials misappropriated state revenues and central income declined because of the
spread of revenue farming. As a result, the salaries of the officials and soldiers could
not be paid regularly and the soldiers became indisciplined and even rebellious.
189
Saiyid brothers had tried had to appease and befriend all sections of the nobility.
A powerful group of nobles headed by Nizam-ul-mulk and his father's cousin
Muhammad Amin Khan began to conspire against them. These nobles were jealous of
the growing power of the two brothers. The deposition and murder of Farrukh Siyar
frightened many of them; , the Emperor could be killed, what safety was there for more
nobles ? Moreover, the murder of Emperor created a wave of public revulsion against
the two brothers. They were looked down upon as traitors-persons who had not been
'true to their self' (namak haram). Many of the nobles of Aurangzeb's reign also disliked
the Saiyid alliance with the Rajput and the Maratha chiefs and their liberal policy
towards the Hindus. These nobles declared that the Siyids were following anti-Mughal
and anti-Islamic policies. They thus tried to arouse the fanatical sections of the Muslim
nobility against the Saiyid brothers. The anti Saiyid nobles were supported by Emperor
Muhammad Shah who wanted to free himself from the control of the two brothers. ln
1720,they succeeded in deceitfully assassinating Hussain Ali Khan, the younger of the
two brothers. Abdullah Khan tried to fight back but was defeated near Agra. Thus
ended the control of the Mughal Empire by the Saiyid brothers known in lndian history
as 'king makens'.
Muhammed Shah
Muhammed Shah's ruled
the Empire. There were no quick changes of imperial authority as in the period 17071720. When his reign began Mughal, prestige among the people was still an important
political factor, the Mughal army and particularly the Mughal artillery was still a force to
reckon with. Administration in northern lndia had deteriorated but not broken down yet.
The Maratha Sardar were still confined to the South, while the Rajput Rajas continued
to be loyal to the Mughal dynasty. A strong and farsighted ruler supported by a nobility
conscious of its peril might still have saved the situation. But Muhammad Shah was not
the man of the moment. He was feeble minded and lighthearted and over fond of ease
and luxury. He abandoned the affairs of state. lnstead of giving full support to able
190
Wazirs such as Nizam-ul-Mulk, he fell under the evil influence of corrupt and worthless
flatterens and intrigued against his own ministers. He even shared in the bribes taken
by his favourity countries.
Shocked with the fickle mindedness and doubtful nature of the Emperor and the
constant quarrels at the court, Nizam-ul-Mulls, the most powerful noble of the time,
decided to follow his own ambition. He had became the Wazir in 1 722 and had made a
vigorous attempt to improvement the administration. He now decided to leave the
Emperor and his Empire to their fate and to strike out on his own. He relinquished his
office in October 1724 and marched south to found the state of Hyderabad in the
Deccan. "His departure was symbolic of the flight of loyalty and virtue from the
empire", the physical break-up of the Mughal Empire had begun.
The other powerful and determined nobles also now began to utilize their
energies for carving out semi independent states. Hereditary nawabs owing allegiance
to the emperor, for example in Bengal, Hyderabad, Auadh and Punjab. Everywhere
petty Zamindars, Rajas and nowabs raised the banner of rebellion and independence.
The Maratha Sardar began their northen growth and overran Malwa, Gujurat and
Bundellkhand. Then in 1738-39 invaded lndia and the empire by postrate.
As a result of the invasion of Nadir Shah and Abdali the suicide internal feuds of
the Maghul nobility, The Maghul empire had by 1761 ceased the exist in practice as an
all lndia Empire. lt remained merely as the kingdom of Delhi.
Shah Alam ll, who ascended the throne in 1759, spend the initial years as an
emperor wandering from place to place for away from his capital. ln 1764 he joined Mir
Qasim of Bengal and Shuja-ud-Daula of Avadh in declaring war upon English East India
Company. Defeated the British at the Battle of Buxar, he lived for same year at
Allahabad as prisoner of the East lndia Company. He left the British shelter in 1772 and
returned to Delhi under the protective arm of Maratha. The British occupied Delhi in
1803 AD and from that year till 1857, when Mughal dynasty finally extinguished.
191
Conclusion
Thus we see that the later Mughals ruled over lndia for more than a century and half (1
707-1858 AD) which in a pretty long time, but they failed to establish their power and
maintain their prestige according to the honour and glory of the early Maghul emperors.
Actually their own incompetence contributed to their downfall and also led the Mughal
empire towards collapse.
The Mughal Empire, which had reached its pinnacle during the rule of
Akbar, Jahangir,Shah Jahan
Aurangzeb.
In fact decline began during the last days of Aurangzeb.There are several
Let us analyses
the
causes that hastened the fall of the mughal empire after Aurangzed.
Responsibility of Aurangzeb
primary failure of Aurangzeb lay in the realm of statesmanship. He was not willing to
identify to the full the Maratha demand for local autonomy, failing to grasp the fact that
Shivaji and
other
Marath Sardars
represented
forces
crushed. Akbar, placed in similar circumstances, had made an alliance with the Rajput
Princes and Chiefs. Aurangzeb too would have been well advised to win over the
Maratha Sardars. lnstead, he chose to suppress them, His fruitless but tiring campaign
against the Marathas
empire and ruined the trade and industry of the Deccan. Secondly,his absence from the
north for over 25 years and his failure to suppress the Marathas led to the weakening
of administration, this undermined the prestige of the Empire and its army, led to the
neglect of the vital north-west frontire, and encouraged provincial and local officials to
confront central authority and to dream of independence. Later in the 18th century
Maratha expansion in the north weakened central authority still further.
Clash with Rajput
Aurangzeb's inconsistency with some of the Rajput states also had serious
consequences. Alliance with the Rajput Rajas with the consequent militany support was
one of the main pillars of Mughal strength in the past. Aurangzeb himself had in the
beginning adhered to the Rajput alliance by raising Jaswant Sing of Marwar and Jai
193
Singh of Amber to the highest of ranks. But his short-sighted attempt later to reduce
the strength of the Rajput Rajas and to re-extend imperial sway over their lands led to
the withdrawal of their loyality from the Mughal throne. Wars which the Rajput rajas
further weakened the Empire and encouraged separation. ln particular they extended to
create a wall between the Hindu and the Muslim upper classes.
Uprising of Satnami, Jat and Sikh
The potency of Aurangzeb's administration was challenged at its very nerve
centre around Delhi by the Satnami, the Jat and the Sikh uprisings. Even through the
number of people involved in these uprisings was not large, they were significant
because they were popular in character-peasants formed their strength of character. All
of them were to a significant textent the result of the oppression of the Mughal revenue
officials over the peasantry. They showed that the peasanty was deeply discontented
with feudal oppression by zamindars, nobles and the state.
Religious policy
Aurangzeb's religious policy and his policy towards the Hindu rulers seriously damaged
the stability of the Mughal Empire. The Mughal state in the days of Akbar, Jahangir, and
Shahjahan was fundamentally a secular state. lts stability was essentially founded on
the policy of non- interference with the religious beliefs and customs of the people,
fostering of friendly relations between Hindus and Muslims. Aurangzeb made an
attempt to reverse this policy by imposing the Jiziya destroying many of the Hindu
temples in the north, and putting certain restrictions on the Hindus. ln this way he
tended to alienate the Hindus, split Mughal society and in particular, to widen the gulf
between the Hindu and Muslim upper classes. But the role of the religious policy of
Aurangzeb in causing the decay of Mughal power should not be over-stressed. It was
speedily abandaned by his Successors. The Jiziyah was abolished within a few years of
Aurangzebs death. Amicable relations with the Rajput and other Hindu nobles and
chiefs were soon restored; and some of them such as Ajit Singh Rathor and Sawai Jai
Singh rose of high offices under the later Mughals. It should also be kept in view that
194
the Rajput, Jat, Maratha and Sikh chieftains of the l8th century also did not behave as
champions of the Hindus. Power and plunder were more important considerations to
them them religious solidarity. !n fact, neither the Hindus nor the Muslims formed a
homogenous community at the time. Sometime the Hindu and Muslim nobles and chiefs
used religion as a weapon of propaganda to achieve their political aims. But even more
often they formed mutual alliances against fellow coreligionists for gaining power,
territory, or money. Moreover, both the Hindu and the Muslim nobles,Zamindars, and
chiefs ruthlessly oppressed and exploited the common people irrespective of their
religion. The Hindu peasantry of Maharastra or Rajputana paid as high an amount in
land revenue as did the Hindu on Muslim peasantry in Agra or Bengal or Avadh.
War of Succession
lf Aurangzeb left the Empire with many tribulations unsolved, the condition was
further worsened by the disastrous wars of succession. ln the absence of any fixed rule
of succession, the Mughal dynasty was always plagued after the death of a king by civil
war between the princes. These wars of succession became extremely violent and
destructive during the 18th century. The resulted in great loss of life and property.'
Thousands of trained soldiers and hundreds of capable military commanders and
efficient and tried officials were killed. Moreover, these civil wars loosened the
administrative fabric of the Empire. The nobility, the backbone of the Empire, was
transformed into warring factions.
The weaknesses of Aurangzeb's reign and the evils of the wars of succession
might stil have been overcome if able, farshighted and energetic rulers and appeaned.
on the throne. Unfortunately, after Bahadur Shah's brief reign came a long reign of
utterly worthless, weak- willed and luxury loving kings the character and personality of
the ruler do play a crucial role.
Nobility
195
Apart from the Personalities of the Great Mughals the strength of the tr4ughal Empire
lay in the Organisation and character of its nobility. The weakness of the king could
have been successfully overcome and covered up by an alert, efficient and loyal
nobility. But the nature of the nobility had also deteriorated. Many noble lived.
extravagantly and beyond their means. Many of them became ease-loving and fond of
excessive luxury. Many of the neglected even the art of fighting. They were often poorly
educated.
A large number of vigorous and able officials and brave and brilliant military
commanders came into prominence during the l8th century but most of them did not
benefit the Empire because they used their talents to promote their own interess and to
fight each other rather than to serve the state and society.
ln fact, contrary to the popular belief, the major weakness of the Mughal nobility
during the 18th century lay, not in the decline in the average ability of the nobles or
their moral decay, but in their selfishness and lack of devotion to the state. ln order to
increase their power- prestige, and income, the nobles formed groups and factions
against each other and even against the king. Their mutual quarrls exhausted the
empire, affected its cohesion, led to its dismemberment and in the end made it an easy
prey to foreign conquerors. Thus, the decadence of the later Mughal nobility lay not so
much in private vice as in tack of public virtue and political foresight and in its devotion
to the short-sighed pursuit of power. But these characteristics were not the monopaly
of the Mughal nobility at the centre. They were found in equal measure among the
rising Maratha chiefs, the Rajput rajas, the Jat, the Sikh, and the Bundela chiefs, the
new rulers of autonomous provinces and the other innumerable adventurers who rose
to fame and power during the troubled 18th century.
Economic causes
196
One of the main causes of the rising selfishness and cliquishness of the nobles
was the scarcity of Jagirs and the reduced income of the existing jagirs at a time when
the number of nobles and their expenditure was going up. The heart of the matter
perhaps was that no arrangement could have been made which would satisfy all the
nobles, for their were just not enough offices and jagirs for all. The paucity of Jagirs
had some other consequences. The nobles tried to get the maximum income from their
jagirs at the cost of the peasantry. The tried to transform their existing jagirs and
offices into hereditary ones. To balance their own budgets they tended to appropriate
khalisah (crown) lands, thus intensifying the financial crisis of the Central Government.
Problem of Revenue
A basic reason of the collapse of the Mughal Empire was that it could not longer
satisfy the minimum needs of its population. The condition of the lndian preasant
gradually worsened during the 1 7th and 18th centuries. The burden of land revenue
went on rising from Akbar's time. Moreover, constant transfer of nobles from their jagirs
also led to great evil. They tried to extract as much from a jagir as possible in the short
period of their tenure as jagirdars. They made heavy demands on the peasants and
cruelly oppressed them often in violation of official regulations.
Problem of Agriculture
All these factors led to stagnation and weakening in agriculture and the hardship
of the peasant. Peasant dissatisfaction increased and came to the surface. There are
some instances of the peasants leaving the land to avoid paying taxes. Peasant
discontent also found as outlet in a series of uprising (the satnamies, the Jats, the
Sikhs, etc) which battered the stability and power of the empire.
197
bankruptcy. The old accumulated wealth was exhausted while the existing sources of
income were narrowed. The area of the Khalisah lands was gradually reduced as
emperors tried to soothe friendly nobles by granting Jagirs out of these lands. The
mutinous zamindars regularly withheld revenue. Efforts to increase income by
oppressing the peasantry produced popular reaction
Role of Army
The might of the Empire was affected. During the 18h century the Mughal army
lacked obedience and combating morale. Lack of finance made it difficult to maintain a
large army. lts soldiers and officers weren't paid for months and .since they were mere
mercenaries, they were constantly disaffected and often verged on a mutiny. Moreover,
the civil wars resulted in the death of many brilliant commanders and brave , and
experienced soldiers. Thus, the army, the ultimate sanction of an empire and the pride
of the Great Mughals was so destabilized that it could no longer grab the ambitious
chiefs and nobles and defend the Empire from foreign aggression.
Foreign lnvasion
The final blow to the Mughal Empire was given by a series of foreign incursion.
Attacks by Nadir Shah and Ahmad Shah Abdali, which were themselves the
consequences of the weakness of the empire, drain the Empire of its wealth, ruined its
trade and industry in the North and almost shattered its military power. Finally, the
emergence of the British challenge took away the last hope of the revival of the crisis
ridden Empire.
Conclusion
ln this last fact lies the most important result of the decline of the Mughal Empire.
None of the lndian power rose to claim the legacy of the Maghul for they were strong
199
enough to destroy the Empire but not strong enough to unite it or to create any thing
new in its place. They could not create a new social order which could stand up to the
new enemy from the west. All of them represented the same declining social system as
headed by the Maghul and all of them suffered from the same weakness which had
destroyed the mighty Maghul Empire.
200
None of these states, however, succeeded in arresting the economic crisis. The
zamindars and Jagirdars, whose number constantly increased continued to fight over a
declining income from agriculture while with the condition of the peasantry continued to
deteriorate. While these states prevented only break down of internal trade and even
tried to promote foreign trade, they did nothing to modernize the basic industrial and
commercial structure of their states.
Bengal
Taking advantage of the mounting weakness of the centre authority, two men of
exceptional ability, Murshid Quli Khan and Alivardi Khan, made Bengal almost
independent. Even though Murshid Quli Khan was made Governor of Bengal as late as
1717, he had been its successful ruler since 1700, when he was appointed its Dewan.
He soon freed himself from central control though he sent regular tribute to the
Emperor. He established peace by freeing Bengal of internal and external danger.
Bengal was now also relatively free of uprisings by zamindars. The only three major
uprisings during his rule were first by Sitaram Ray, Udai Narayan and Ghuram
Muhammad and then by Shujat Khan, and finally by Najat Khan. After defeating them,
Murshid euli Khan gave their zamindars to his favourity, Ramjivan. Murshid Quli Khan
died in 1727 and his son-in-law Shuja-ud-din ruled Bengal till 1739. In that year,
Alivardi Khan deposed and killed Shuja-ud-din's son Sarfaraz Khan and made himself
the Nawab.
These three Nawabs gave Bengal a long period of peace and orderly
administration and promoted its trade and industry. Murshid Quli Khan effected
economies in the administration and reorganized the finances of Bengal by transferring
large parts of jagir lands into Khalisah land by carrying out a fresh revenue settlement
and by introducing system of revenue-farming. He also granted agricultural loans
Ttaccavi) to the poor cultivators to relieve their distress as well as to enable them to
pay land revenue in time. He was thus able to increase the resources of the Bengal
Government. But the system of revenue-farming led to increased economic pressure on
201
the peasant. Moreover, even though he demanded only the standard revenue and
forbade illegal cases, he collected the revenue from the zamindars and the peasants
with utmost cruelty. Another result of his reforms was that many of the older zamindars
were driven out and their place taken by upstart revenue farmers.
Murshid Quli Khan and the succeeding Nawabs gave identical opportunities for
employment to Hindus and Muslims. They filled the highest civit posts and many of the
military posts with Bengalis, most of whom were Hindus. ln choosing revenue farmers
Murshid Quli Khan gave preference to local zamindars and Mahajans (money-lenders)
who were mainly Hindus. He thus laid the foundations of a new landed aristocary in
Bengal .
All the three Nawabs recognized that expansion of trade benefited the people
and the Government and therefore, gave encouragement to all merchants, Indian or
foreign. They provided for the safety of roads and rivers from thieves and robbers by
establishing regular Thans and Chowkies. They checked private trade by officials. They
prevented abuses in the customs administration. At the same time they made it a point
to maintain strict control over the foreign trading companies and their servants and
prevented them from abusing their privileges. They forced the servants of the English
East lndia Company to obey the laws of the land and to pay the same customs duties
as were being paid by other merchants. Alivardi Khan did not permit the English and
French to fortify their factories in Calcutta and Chandrangar. The Bengal Nawabs
proved, however to be short sighted and negligent in one respect. They did not firmly
put down the increasing tendency of the English East lndia Company after fiA7 to use
military force or to threaten its use to get its demands accepted. They had the power to
deal with the companies threats but they continued to believe that a mere trading
company could not threaten their power. They failed to see that the English Company
was no mere company of traders but was the representative of the most aggressive
and expansionist colonialism of the time. Their ignorance of and lack of contact with the
rest of the world was to cost the state dear otherwise. They would have known of the
202
said to have improved the tot of the peasant by levying equitable land revenue and by
protecting him from oppression by the big zamindars.
Like the Bengal Nawabs, he too did not distinguish between Hindus and Muslims.
Many of his commanders and high officials were Hindus and he curbed refractory
zamindars, chiefs and nobles irrespective of their religion. He is troops were well-paid,
well-armed and well trained. His administration was well-organized. Before his death in
1739, he had become virtually independent and had made the province a inherited
possession. He was succeeded by his nephew Safdar Jang, who was at the same time
appointed the Wazir of the Empire in 1748 and granted in addition in province of
Allahabad.
Safdar Jang gave a long period of peace to the people of Avadh and Allahabad
before his death in 1754. He suppressed rebellious zamindars and made an alliance
with the Maratha Sardars so that his dominon was saved from their incursions. He
carried on warfare against the Roelas and the Bangash Pathans. ln his was against the
Bangash Nawabs in 1750,51, he secured Maratha military help by paying a daily
allowance of Rs.25,000 and jat support by paying Rs,15,000 a day. Later, he entered
into an agreement with the peshwa by which the peshwa was to help the Mughal
Empire against Ahmad Shah Abdali and to protect it from such internal rebels as the
lndian Pathans and the Rajput rajas. In return the peshwa was to be paid Rs.50 lakhs,
granted the chauth of the Punjab, Sindh and several districts of northern India and
made the Governor of Ajmer and Agra. The agreement failed, however as the peshwa
went over to Safdar Jang's enemies at Delhi who promised him the governorship of
Avadh and Allahabad. Safdar Jang also organized an equitable system of justice. He too
adopted a polish of impartiality in the employment of Hindus and Muslims. The highest
post in his Government was held by a Hindu, Maharaja Nawab Rai.
The prolonged period of peace and of economic prosperity of the nobles under
the government of the Nawabs resulted in time in the growth of a distinct Lucknow
culture around the Avadh court. Lucknow, for long an important city of Avadh and the
204
seat of the Avadh Nawabs after 1775, soon rivaled Delhi in its patronage of arts and
literature. Lt also developed as an important centre of handicrafts.
Safdar Jang maintained a very high standard of personal morality. All his life he
was devoted to his only wife. As a matter of fact all the founders of the three
autonomous kingdoms of Hyderabad, Bengal and Avadh, namely, Nizam-ul-Mulk,
Murshid Quli Khan and Alivardi Khan and Saadat Khan and Safdar Jang, were men of
high personal decency. Nearly all of them tld austere and simple lives. Their lives give
tie to the belief that all the leading nobles of the 18h century led extravagant and
luxurious lives. lt was only in their public and political dealings that they resorted to
fraud, intrigue and treachery.
Deccan
The independent state of Hyderabad in the Deccan was founded by Chin Qrlich
Khan, titled Nizim-ul-Mulk Asaf Jah afterwards. At the time of the death of Aurangzeb,
he, was at Bijapur. He observed perfect neutrality in the war of succession which
ensured between the sons of Aurangzeb. Bahadur shah 1, who became the emperor
after finishing his rivals, removed him from the Deccan and made him the governor of
Awadh and faujdar of Gorakhpur.
After the death of Bahadur Shah ,he supported the cause of Farruksiyar against
Jahandar Saha. Therefore, when Farrukhsiyar became the emperor, he appointed him
governor of the six Subahs of the Deccan and awarded him the titles of Khan Khanan
and Nizam-ul-Mulk Bahadur Fatah Jang. From that time onwards, he thought of nothing
except to rule over the Deccan independently of Delhi.
He however, was recalled to Delhi in 1715 AD. he first appointed at Moradabad
and then as the Governor of Malwa. His activities in Malwa aroused the jealousy of the
Sayyid brothers who were de-facto rulers of Delhi at that time. They planned to throw
away Nizam from Malwa. This time Nizam opposed them. He defeated and killed
205
Dilawar Khan who was sent to displace his from Malwa. He also captured forts of
Asirgarh and Burhanpur and thus became the undisputed master of the Deccan.
After the fall of the Sayyid brothers, emperor Muhammad Shah called him to Delhi and
appointed him to Wazir of the empire. He however did not find the atmosphere of the
court friendly for himself and left for the Deccan. The new Governor of the Deccan.
Mubariz Khan opposed him as he was secretly advised to do so by the emperor. But the
Mizam enlisted the support of the Marathas and defeated Mubariz Khan in the battle of
Sakharkharda in 1724 A.D. He occupied Hyderabad in 1724 A.D, that marked the
founding of the independent state of Hyderabad. Nizam-ul-mulk from that time ruled as
an independent ruler in the Deccan except that he did not use an imperial umbrella and
mint coin in his name.
Nizam-ul-Mulk faced greatest challenge from the Marathas who under the
leadership of Peshwa Baji Rao I were determined to collect Chauth and Sardeshmukhi
from the six Subahs of the Deccan and limit the power of Nizam. Nizam was an shrewd
diplomate and a competent commander. He tried to divide the Marathas, roused the
ambition of senapati Trimabak Rao against Peshwa Baji Rao and refused to pay Chauth
and Sardeshmukhi. But, Baji Rao proved more than a match for him. He defeated
Nizam twice-first at phalkhed in 1728 AD. and, next time near Bhopal in 1738 AD.
Therefore, both times he had to purchase peace from the Peshwa and agree to pay
Chauth and Sardeshmukhi besides other terms. Thus, Baji Rao successfully put a check
on the power of Nizam in the Deccan. ln between Nizam was once called to the Mughal
court and awarded the title of Asaf Jah. Once more he was called to the court from the
Deccan to settle the terms of peace with Nadir Shah. He failed to settle anything with
Nadir Shah and returned back to Deccan. Thereafter, he did not participate in the
politics of Delhi. He died in 1748 A.D. at the age of seventy-seven. Nizam was the first
independent ruler of Hyderabad and he was also the most capable one among the
rulers of the Deccan.
206
(D)Rise of Marathas
lntroduction
The glory of the rise of the Marathas goes to Shivaji. But it is a fact that the
background of their rise had already been prepared before the rise of Shivaji on the
horizon of lndian History. Dr. lshwani Prasad affirms that the rise of Shivaji was not a
strong event in the history of Maharastra. Shivaji did not rise to power by sheer did not
of his bravery and courage but the geographical situation and the people of that region
contributed to it all , who cooperated and supported him with all three might.
Owing to specified geographical conditions of Maharastra some special
characteristics flourished in the character of the inhabitants of Maharastra. The hilly
range of Deccan always saved them from the invaders. Different problems of livelihood
207
made the Marathas strong, industrious and self confident. The secret of success of their
guerilla warfare lay in the valleys and caves of Maharastra which defended them like
strong forts. J.N. Sarkar mentions that nature had stuffed Marathas with toleration,
clarity and social equality. There was no difference among the Marathas and their
women were completely complement and helpful to them in their patriotism and
strength.
3.7.1 Shivaji (AD 1627-1680)
Historians have conflicting opinions about
the
Rajware and B.G. Tilak mention in Shiva Charitra Pradeep that he was born in A.D.
1627 whereas some other historians like J.N. Sarkar considered 19th March A.D. 1630
to be the date of birth of Shivaji. He was born in the hilly fort of Shivner near Junnar to
Jija Bai who was the first wife of Shahji Bhonsel. As Shahji Bhonsel married another
woman Tuka Bai Mohite, in his early age Shivaji was taken by his mother fond to his
grandfather, Dadaji Kondeva, brought him up with great care. From the very childhood
Shivaji was fearless. ln the making of his character and personality the three great
personalities- Jija Bai, his mother, Guru Samarth Ram Das and Dadaji Kondvacontributed a lot. Soon he became specialist both in the religious scriptures and in
handling various arms.
When Shaji Bhonsel handed over to Shivaji his Jagir of Poona, he was only
twelve years old. In A.D. 1641, he was married to Sai Bai Nimbalkar at Bangalore. The
town of Joudali had a great significance in the rise of Shivaji where mostly Nawalis
lived. Shivaji organized them by his military ability and began to conquer forts, one
after the other.
The year A.D. 1646 was very precarious for Bijapur as problem of law and order
emerged there and anarchy and insecurity prevailed in the entire kingdom. Shivaji, took
advantage of this situation and attained some early victories. lt is not certain whether
Shivaji wanted to establish a Hindushaki kingdom in Deccan or he was endeavouring
208
just to satisfy his ambitions. Dadaji kondeva was against this tendency of Shivaji. But
Dadaji Kondeva breathed his last in A.D. 1641, hence Shivaji got an opportunity to lead
his self decided path with out interruption.
Early Expeditions of Shivaji
First of all Shivaji conquered the fort of Toran and found immense wealth there.
He utilized this wealth in building the famous fort of Rajgarh and organizing his army.
Later on he attained victory over other Kingdoms of Bijapur. As a result of Shivaji's
victories, the Sultan of Bijapur put his father Shahji into imprisonment on the charge of
treason. Shahji endeavoured to set his father free with the help of prince Murad
Bakhsha but he did not succeed J. N. Sarkar opin that Shahji was freed by the efforts of
Sarja Khan and Randaula Khan, nobles of Bijapur, and Murda did not support Shivaji.
Dr. A.L. Srivastava writes, "The release could be possible only after Shivaji had returned
the conquered forts."
After on unstable and temporary truce, Shivaji again resorted to conquests and
established his control over Jawali in A.D. 1556: Chandra Rao Mal, a boble of Jawali,
was put to death for he planned a conspiracy to check the expansion of Shivaji in
Deccan with the help of the Suljan of Bijapur; Khafi Khan has pointed out that the
power of Shivaji went on increasing day by day. He captured some of the forts of
Bijapur. Within a short span of time, Shivaji attained power and prosperity. According to
J.N. Sarkar, the Victory of Jawali was the out come of well planned murder and
conspiracy. He failed to enhance his meager power through proper means. However,
the conquest of Jawali proved very significant for Shivaji. He got efficient warriors from
there and captured the vast treasury of Morios.
Mughul Maratha relation
First conflict Between Marathas and Mughals-
209
Perhaps Shivaji, being a shrewd politician and efficient diplomat, did not want to wage
a war against the Mughals and the Bijapur's at a time. ln A.D. 1656, after the death of
Muhammad Adil Shah Aurangzeb planned to invade Bijapur. Shivaji was prepared to
support Aurangzeb on the condition that Aurangzeb recognized his victories in Bijapur.
But seeing the indifferent attitude of Aurangzeb he concluded a pact with the Sultan of
Bijapur, and Maratha soldiers and commanders, plundered the regioin upto
Ahmadnagar. Shivaji himself entered Junnar and they looted three lakh
along with
some horses. Aurangzeb wanted to punish Shivaji but he could not take any action
against the Maratha Chief, because in A.D. 1657 war of succession broke out among
the sons of Shahjahan due to his illness . Aurangzeb had to withdraw his attention from
Deccan to the Mughal throne.
Invasion of Kankan
When Shahjahan was emperor he had ordered his son Aurangzeb to launch an
expedition against this 'province due to its constantly deterioration position. ln the
meanwhile, war of succession irrupted among the Mughal princes and Aurangzeb was
very much involved in it. So Shivaji got an appropriate opportunity to increase his
power and to strengthen his army for the extension of his empire. He unsuccessfully
endeavored to attain victory against the sides. ln A.D. 1657, Shivaji achieved victory
over Kankan and forced the Portuguese for the payment of, revenue. Shivaji got a vast
booty from this place.
Murder of Afzal Khan
Afzal Khan was sent against Shivaji in order to crush his increasing influence. He was
also Known as Abdullah Bhattari. He was proud of his efficiency in war and used to say,
"l will imprison Shivaji without being dismounted from his horse. Afzal Khan proceeded
from Bijapur. He plundered the temples in the territory of Shivaji and destroyed the
images. A contemporary historian has remarked about the success of Shivaji that within
no time, Khan turned the conquered land of Shivaji into "Jalaurgah' (the land of the
210
horse-riders). Afzal Khan endeavored to entrap Shivaji into his clutches with the help of
Krishnaji Bhaskar. With the help of his spy Shivaji came to know that Afzal Khan had
conspired to arrest him at the time of meeting. As per plan a meeting was arranged
between these two diplomats on the top of the hill and below the fort of Pratapgarh.
Shivaji went to the spot well prepared. He hided his soldiers in the nearbly bushes. He
wore a Kavach (armour), put on lion paw (Bagh nakha) and 'Bichhuwa' for attacking the
enemy, at the time of need. At the spot Afzal Khan showing his compassion embraced
Shivaji and tied him in his arms. He also used his dagger to kill the Maratha Chief but as
he was putting on a Kavach (armour) he could not be hurt. At the same time Shivaji
pulled out the intestines of Afzal Khan with the help of 'Baghnakh' and 'Bichhuwa'.
Sayyid Banda, a companion of Afzal Khan hit on his head but it did not affect as Shivaji
was wearing a irron helmet below the turban. At the same time the Maratha soldiers
came out of the bus his and forced the soldiers of Bijapur to run away.
Had Shivaji not been acquainted with the conspiracy of Afjal Khan, he would have been
assassinated by him. Actually he paid Afzal Khan in his own coin and hence his act was
justified against the strategy of Afzal Khan who wanted to deceive Shivaji. The slightest
carelessness of Shivaji would not only have changed the result of this meeting but also
the history of the Marathas.
Encirclement of Shivaji in Panchala
The victorious Maratha forces invaded Kolhapur out of enthusiasm and
established their control over the fort of Panchala. The Sultan of Bijapur at once
dispatched Sidi Jauhar andFazal Khan, son of deceased. Afzal Khan, against the
Marathas. Shivaji cleverly won the favour of Sidi Jauhar but Afzal Khan alone continued
efforts to recapture the fort. ln A.D. 1 660, when Shivaji fet the fall of the fort
inevitable, he proceeded to Vishalgarh.
Shaista Khan and Shivaji
211
After the second coronation ceremony Aurangzeb posted his maternal uncle
Shaistan Khan in Deccan and ordered him in clear terms to crush the power of
Marathas in Deccan. Shaista'Khan established his control over the fort of Chakan by his
diplomatic tricks. He atso tried to capture the provichce of Konkan and attained victory
over Katlan again but Shivaji was not less efficient than his rival Shaista Khan. He soon
recaptured Konkan, Kolaba and Ratnagiri from the Mughals.
In A.D. 1660, Shaista Khan came back to Poona and stayed in Lal Mahal where Shivaji
had passed his childhood, Shivaji made a scheme of night attack against Shaista Khan.
He entered the campus of Mughal camp with his four hundred trusted and selected
soliers. On enquiry they told the royal guards that they were soldiers of the royal army
in the south and were going to join their new posting. After taking some rest, the
Marathas soldiers reached the abode of Shaista Khan in the night. ln one stroke a
thumb of Shaista Khan was cut down and he was sure to risk his life when at this
critical juncture an intelligent women put out the lamp. so taking the advantage of the
darkness, Shaista Khan could escape from the camp but his son died in defence of his
father. Khaf! Khan remarks that this out of Shivaji terrified the Mughal court. They felt
that Shivaji. had some magic power because he wounded the Governor of Deccan
Shaista Khan in his own camp in his bedroom where he was surrounded with his
maidservants and body guards. Thus the night attack of Shivaji proved completely
successful and the Mughal commanders did not attack the retreating Maratha Soldiers
out of fear.
Plunder of Surat
From 6th Janujary to 10th
prosperous port of Surat. After making a secrte scheme Shivaji started an invasion
against Surat when the process of exchange subedars was going on in Auroangzeb. The
Sudden attack of Marathas terrified the people and they began to flee away with their
families . The Maratha, therefore plundered unguarded and depopulated port of Surat
freely. They procured as much wealth from the coffers of the rich people as they could
212
and set their houses on fire. J.N, Sarkar writes that nobody opposed the plunder. heaps
of ail kinds of things were placed before Shivaji, The Marathas took advantage of their
four days stay in the town and did not show cruelty towards any one. The ruler of Surat
tried to assassinate Shivaji but he rnurder himself became a victim of the sword of
Shivajis bodyguard, On 10h January A.D, 1664 when Shivaji came to know about the
arrival of a vast Mughal army for the defence of the city, he secretly slipped away from
surat along with his soldiers and booty' Shivaji gathered about one crore rupees in all
from this plunder. moreover, the town of Surat became 'Besurat'(without beauty) as
result of plunder and fire.
Arrival of Jai singh and the treaty of purandar
Seeining the growing power of Shivaji, Aurangzeb posted Raja Jai Singh of Amber
against him. Jai Singh was a great commander and he was honoured several times in
the reign of Shahjahan for his briallant successes. Besides being a brave soldier and
General Raja Jai Singh was shrewd politician and worthy diplomat. He separated Shivaji
from Adil Shah very skillfully. Raja Jai Singh intended to terrify him by organizing all his
opponents and making their use against him at a stretch.
So he gained the favour of the Portuguese, the Sidis, the Morios and AFazal Khan in
order to achieve his object. With a view to encircling Shivaji in Purandar, jai Singh
attacked the fort of Bajragarh, and the fall of Bajragarh made the defence of Porbandar
difficult for Shivaii. On the other hand Jai Singh was plundering and terrifying the
Maratha territory constantly, The successes of Jai Singh forced Shivaji to conclude a
treaty with Aurangzeb, But Jai Singh did not accept the proposal of Shivaji at the outset
as he was well aware with the nature and tendency of Shivaji but after getting a
promise and assurance of his life and honour Shivaji went to meet the Rajput
commander on 24h June A.D. 1665 in person. Raja Jai Singh welcomed the Maratha
ruler with due respect and made him seated beside him. After the treaty of Purander
was signed the fort of Purander was surrendered to the Mughals and Shivaji was
honoured with a Khillat from the Mughat emperor. After a prolonged discussion
213
between Raja Rai singh and Shivaji the following terms were included in the treaty of
Purander.
(1) Out of his thirty-five forts, shivaji handed over twenty three forts to the Mughals
which had an annual income of 40 lakhUeens.
(2) On the condition of being faithful to the Mughal empire Shivaji was allowed to
maintain his influence over the remaining twelve forts.
(3) Shivaji would send his eight-year old son Shambhaji in the Mughal court in his place
where he given a Mansab of 500 and a post of pride on the recommendations of Raja
Jai singh.
(4) Shivaji would present himself in the royal army at the time of need and on the royal
command. Shivaji's proposal of having his control over the province of Konkan and
Balaghat - Bijapur's province was also accepted which fetched an income of 4lakh Huns
and 5 lakh Huns to the Mughal emperor in 13 instalments, provided he was assured
that these provinces would remain under his control inspite of their impending victory
by the Mughals.
Defeat of Panchala
Jai Singh made a surprise attack on Bijapur with the help of Shivaji but he did
not get success in his mission as Bijapur had made wonderful preparations for its
defence. A vast area around the fort was devastated by the army of Bijapur so that the
army of the enemy could not get food grains. ln the absence of food and fodder, Jai
Singh was forced to retreat on 15h January A.D. 1666. At the time of retreat he
directed Shivaji to besiege the fort of Panchala but as it was delayed, the Mughals failed
to capture the fort. Actually the mistake of Nathuji, a relative of Shivaji, proved
dsiastroous in getting the fort in possession.
Shivaji's visit to Agra (A.D. 1666)
214
After the collapse of Bijapur expedition Raja Jai Singh undertook the task of sending
Shivaji to the Mughal court with a view to enhancing his influence in the Mughal court.
He made Shivaji sure about his future good and assured him of safety of life and
prestige, in case he visited the Mughal court. At last he succeeded in preparing shivaji
to visit the Mughal court under the regency of his son Kunwar Ram singh. Leaving the
work of administration on the Shoulders of his colleagues under the guardianship of his
mother Jija Bai, Shivaji marched on 16th Masuh A.D. 1666 towards Agra along with his
son Sharnbhaji and a few soldiers. ln the Mughal court at Agra, Shivaji was made to
stand among the third rank officers, and no further notice was taken of him. Shivaji felt
embarrassed to find that he was placed among the Panch Hazari nobles. He expressed
his resentment in a loud voice and dishonored the court decorum. So he and his son
were put under house arrest.
When Shivaji failed in his attempt to be permitted to return home in the normal
course, he resorted to diplomatic trick and feigned illness. L{e started distributing fruits
and sweets to the poor daily )in order to get rid of the sickness. ln the beginning the
watch and ward department of the Mughal court was quite vigilant and checked every
basket properly well but with the passage of time some looseness crept in the checking
of the baskets as it had became a common feature. Shivaji and his son managed to
escape in the baskets. Leaving Shambhaji with a Maratha Brahmin at Mathura, Shivaji
proceeded very carefully towards Deccan. The adventurous escape of Shivaji infected a
revolution among the Marathas. it was a turning point in Mughal - Maratha relations. lt
not only concelled the treaty of Purandar but also created a deep gulf between the
Mughals and the Maraths As Shivaji was very much exasperated with the behaviour of
Aurangzeb, he once again started fighting against the Mughals and recaptured most of
the forts.
ln A.D. 1670, he plundered Surat for the second time. Aurangzeb had been
advised by Raja Jasawant Singh arrd Prince Muazzam to confer the title of Raja on
Shivaji and to make Shabhaji a Panch ltazari mansabdar. This had been done before the
215
Sack of Surat but peace was broken after a couple of months. The war which started in
A.D. 1670 continued upto A.D. 1674. Shivaji attained wonderful victories du- ring this
period. In June A. D. 1674,Shivaji crowned himself at Raigarh. lt was land mark in the
history of the Marathas, Shivaji ruled upto A.D. 1680 and died at the age of 53 in A.D.
1680. Lane pool remarks, " A sudden illness put and end to his extraordinary career in
A.D. 1680 when he was about quite fifty three years of age. At the time of the death of
Shivaji he had quite a big Kingdom. His civil administration and military organization
have been highly paised by contemporary and later historians.
3.7.1 Adminstration of Shivaji
Shivaji was not merely a daring solier and a successful military conqueror, but also an
enlightened ruler of his people. As Mr. Rawlison observes like mearly all great warrior
Napolen is a conspicuous example - Shivaji was also a great administration, for the
qualities which go to make a capable general are those which required by the
successful organizes and stateman.
His system, like that of the Muslim rulers of lndia, was an autocracy, of which he
himself was the suprme head. But in actual discharge of state business he was helped
by a council of eight minister the Astapradhans whose function were chiefly advisory. .
ln the army organization of Shivaji ,a Havaldar was appointed on twenty five horsemen.
One Jumaldar was appointed on five Havaldars, one Hazan on ten Jumaldars and one
Five hazari was appointed over five Harazins. Sar-i-naubat was the head of all cavalry in
the army of Shivaji.
The infantry of Shivaji was also divided in the same style. One Nayak was posted on
nine foot-soldiers. One havaldar over ten Nayaks, one Jumaldar over two or three
Havaldars and one Hazari Mansabdar was appointed over ten Jumaldars. The post of
sat Hazari was considered the highest in the infantry but he was controlled by Sar-iNaubat.
216
The army of Shivaji comprised soldiers of dissimilar castes but all of them were
always prepared to sacrifice their lives on the command of their master. The soldiers
were paid their salary in cash and they were kept in strict discipline. During rainy
season the army remained at the headquarters but went on expeditions ofter wards.
The soldiers were strictly warned not to misbeheave with the womanfolk and Brahmins
nor were they permitted to harm the peasants and agriculture.
There were about 250 forts under the control of Shivaji which were properly
administered. Normally, the forts were constructed on the top of hills and no ememy
could conquer them easily. Contingents were kept in the forts for their safety.
Realizing the Significance of the navy, Shivaji organized it also it was essential
for the safety of sea-coast. Dr. S.N. Sen writes, 'Unlike many of his contemporaries, the
great Maratha had realized that a strong naval power without a strong mercantile navy
was impossibility'. Hence Shivaji resorted to the organization of a strong navy, and
safeguarded his empire from the invasions of the Sidis of Janjira. Shivaji's navy
consisted of about four hundred ships of different Kinds. Daulat Khan and Misri were his
most capable and trusted naval commanders. The fought battle against the Dutch, the
Portuguese and the British, but it was no match to the European navat forces. Actually
the avy of Shivaji was not meant for waging wars but to collect trade tax from the
traders.
Revenue System
ln order to reinforce the financial condition of the empire Shivaji paid proper
attention towards the revenue system of the empire. After making an evaluation of the
total produce of empire, 2/3 part was fixed as the Share of the royal treasury. The
farmers were at liberty to deposit this revenue (tax) in the form of corn or cash. During
his reign Shivaji did not encourage the system of Jagirdari as he believed in Rayatwari
217
system in which the state used to keep direct relations with the peasants and looked
after the welfare of the peasants by providing them help at the time of natural calamity.
Besides land revenue, Chauth and Sardeshmukhi were also the source of income
of the empire. Shivaji used to realize both these taxes. from the neighbouring countries.
The Chouth was 1/4th part of the income of the province while the eight ministers who
formed Asta Pradhan.
1. Peshwa - he was the Prime Minister. He was in charge of general welfare of the
state.
2. Amatya - He was the Finance Minister. He used to check and countersing all public
accounts of the state.
3. Mantri- The Mantri or Chronicler used to keep a diary of the Kings daily work in the
court. He was also known as Wakia Navis.
4. Sumanta - He was the Foreign Secretary. He was in charge of foreign affairs. He
discussed questions of war and peace with the King and advised him on matters
relating to foreign affaris. His duty was to keep himself in touch with other states.
5. Sachiva - He was the Home Secretary. lt was his duty to look to the
correspondence of the King. He was authorized to revise the Kings letters. He used to
check the accounts of the Parganas.
6. Pandit Rao or Davadhyaksha - He was the Ecclesiastical ead and looked after
grants to religious bodies and learned men.
7. Nyayadhish - He was the Chief Justice. He was responsible for civil and military
justice.
8. Senapati - He was the commander-in-Chief and looked after the recruitment,
organization and discipline of the army.
218
Besides the Nyayadhish and Pandit Rao all were required to command armies
and to led expeditions at the time of need.
Provincial Administration
Shivaji had divided his entire Kingdom into four parts for: the facility of administration
and well being of the people.
(1) The first part, known as northern province, contained Dung, Baglana, Loli Pradesh,
south of surat, Konkan, northern Bombay and Deccan plateau in Southen Poona.
(2) The second part, known as Southern province, contained Konkan, Southern
Bombay, Sawant vadi and the northern Kanara coast.
(3) The third part, known as South-eastern province, contained Satar and Kolhapur
district, Belgaon in the west of Tungabhadra, Dharwar and Kopal.
(4) The fourth part, the newly conquered province contained the area on the other side
of Tungabhadra i.e. from Kopal to Vellore.
Miltitary administration
The military organization of Shivaji was quite good. The basic part of the army of
Shivaji was infantry and cavalry. 45,000 Paga and 60,000 Silhadar cavalry was the
strength of the army.
infantry .Elephants and a small artillery was atso significant part of his army. The paga
soldiers were also Known as Bargirs. They were provided horses and arms by the state
whereas the Silhadars were the owners Sardeshmukhi was 1/ 100'. Historian are not
unanimous about the causes of the realization of these taxes. M.G. Ranade opines that
these taxes were collected from the neighbouring states in lieu of their safety from
foreign invaders, but Dr. Sarkar, Dr. Sardeshi and Dr. Sen do not agree to this opinion
of Ranade. They mention that Shivaji did not undertake the responsibility of their safety
but only realized these taxes by dint of his force of arms. Besides these taxes there
219
were some other sources of income of the state in the form of taxes on the sate and
purchase of things, trade taxes, forest tax, gifts and presents and the booty collected
during invasions.
Religious policy
Shivaji was a tolerant ruler. His spiritual teacher Guru Ram Das infused the spirit
of tolerance in him and as a true Hindu he honoured the Brahmins, the Vedas and the
cows but he was not fanatic at all. He behaved with the people of other sects quite
politely and never offended them for their being followers of lslam or other religions. He
used to pay proper regards to the Quran and the Mosques and protected the Muslim
ladies and children during wars. Owing to his liberal religious attitude, , his bitter critic
Khafi Khan also has praised him a lot.
Weakness in Shivaji's System The Kingdom carved out by Shivaji did not last long after his death. One of the
reasons of this was that the reign of Shivaji was very short and throughout this period
he had to fight against his enemies. He therefore, could not consolidate his empire.
There were constant disputes among the Marathas regarding the distribution of
hereditary land. Shivaji could not solve all of them. Those who were not satisfied,
joined Shivaji's enemies and tried to weaken his government. The caste system among
the Marathas also produced dissensions in the society. it stood in the way of their
solidarity.
No organized attempt was made to educate. to the people of Maharastra and to
improve their intellect and character. The masses were ignorant, hence the Maratha
nation could not become very strong.
Conclusion
220
wherefrom he borrowed this term. Some scholars, belive that it was not an independent
thinking of Shivaji but a practial mixturee of Hindu and Muslim systems. This post was
given to a person who was confident of the King. Later on this post was bears
hereditary and the Peshwas grabbed all the power of the state.
Sahu (1707-49)
After the death of Aurangzeb in 1707, the Mughals tried to divide the Marathas. ln
1707, Zulfikar Khan, the Governor of the Deccan, set Sahu free and the latter claimed
the Government of the country from Tara Bai. Sahu has been captured in 1689 and
kept in Mughal custody along with his mother. He was seven years of age at that time.
He spent more than 18 years in captivity and got the training which could be available
under the circumstances. Efforts were made to convert him without much success.
When Sahu was released by the Mughals, there started a struggle between the
two groups of the Marathas. Tara Bai declared that Sahu was an importer and he had
221
no right to the Kingdom which had been Iost by his father Sambhaji. The present state
was created by her husband Raja Ram and Shivaji ll was the lawful ruler. She sent an
army under Dhanaji to check the advance of Sahu and a battle was fought at Khed in
November, 1707. Tara Bai was defeated and she retired to Kolhapur with her son
Shivaji ll. When Shivaji ll died, his step brother Shabhaji was put on the Gaddi of
Kolhapur. Sahu was recognized as the ruler of the Marathas on the Gaddi of Satara.
The relations between Sahu and Sambhaji were not cordial. The latter was
determined to get back half of Maratha territory for himsetf. Sambhaji went to the
extent of hiring assassins for murder Sahu. However, in 1731, the Treaty of Warna was
signed between Sahu and Sambhaji. According to it, Sahu gave to Sambhaji the Warna
Mahal and all the Districts known as Dotarfa along with the forts and military outposts
to the South of confluence of the Warna and the Krishna. The fort of Kopal was also
giving to Sambhaji in exchange for Ratnagiri. All the forts and military out posts from
the confluence of the Warna and the Krishna to that of the Krishna and the
Tungabhadra to the South were given to him. From the Tungabhadra to Rameswaram,
hatf the teritory was given to Sambhaji. ln the Konkon, all the districts from Salai to
panch Mahal were given to Sambhaji. Both the Paties agreed to destroy the enemies of
each other and agreed to work together for the improvement of the Kingdom .
The treaty of 1711 resolved the differences between Satara and Kolhapur and
after that the relations between Sahu and Sabhaji remained cordial. Sambhaji paid
many visits to Satara and he was very nicely treated by Sahu. Sabhaji died in 1760, 11
years after the death of Sahu.
Sahu had a soft corner in his heart for every one who approached him. There was no
drop of caste prejudice in his nature or policy. Although he did not personally lead
distant expeditions, he kept a close watch over the actions. Of his subordinate to whom
he had allotted separate spheres of influence. He called them to account for any wrong
or misdeed committed by them, reprimanded, punished them, rewarded them,
222
compromised their quarrels and adjusted their disputes by calling them to his presence
at satara for personat explanation, for settlement.
Ramraja (1749-77)
Sahu I was succeeded by Ram Raja. He was declared by Tarabai to be grandson
of Rajaram who had lived in exile as an ordinary fellow. There was a struggle for power
between Tarabai on the one side and Balaji Baji Rao on the other. The Peshwa was not
prepared to give up the power which he was enjoying. Tarabai captured RamRaja on
24th November, 1750 and made him a prisoner. This imprisonment continued upto 1763
when Tarabai herself died. To begin with, the Peshwa wahted to free Ramraja from the
hands of Tarabai but later on a reconciliation was made between Tarabai and the
Peshwa and on that occasion Tarabai but later on a reconciliation was made between
Tarabi and the Peshwa on that occasion Tarabai declared that Ramraj was an irnposter
and not the real grandson of Rajaram. The result at this was that no respect was left in
the eyes of the people for Ramraja. However, he was freed after 1763 and hespent the
rest of his days in peace.
Sahu II (1777-1808)
Ramraja was succeeded by his adopted son sahu ll. Hel was an youngman of
strong build and took to his high position with high hopes of improving the lot of his
family and striving in" Maratha state so for as it lay in his power. However, he found
that his position was very miserable. His allowances were met down by Nana Phadnavis
, and many kinds of restrictions were imposed upon him and the members of his family.
Although he was known as Chhatrapati, he was looked upon as costly appendage with
no assigned duty to perform. The only function left to him was to bestow the official
robes of the peshwaship whenever a new pershwa succeeded.
Pratap Singh (18O8-1839)
223
When Sahu ll died in 1808, he was succeeded by his son Pratap Singh. The
relations between the Chantrapati and peshwa Bajirao were not cordial. The result was
that in many occasions Pratap Singh approached the British Government to help him
against the Peshwa. When the Peshwa fell In 1818, Pratap Singh was installed once
again in his former position by the British. A small territory nearly equating a district
was given Pratap Singh for his rule. So a formal treaty was entered into between the
Britis Government and pratap Singh.
By that treaty, Pratap Singh undertook not of hold any correspondence with the outside
powers. He was not to increase his forces but was to remain for ever loyal to the British
Government.
To begin with, the relalations between the British Government and Pratap Singh
were friendly and he was even honoured by the British Government. However, later on
the relation became strained and he was deposed on 4h September, 1839 without
giving him an opportunity to explain his conduct. Pratap Singh died in 1847 . According
to a contemporary Maratha writer, "He (Pratap Singh) possessed avery keen intellect
and an uncommon address. An expert rider and born solider, a pure generous heart,
trained in the traditional lore, he quickly detected the merits and foibles of those who
came in contact with. He adjudicated disputes with exemplary impartiality and
conducted the administration with firmness and regularity. He was ever disposed to
forgive rather than to avenge. He was careful in his religious observances and took
delight in relieving the misery of the poor and the oppressed.
Shaji (183948 A.D.)
Pratap singh was succeeded by his brother, Shaji Appasaheb. He was notoriously
incompetent. However, he died childless on 5th April, 1848. No adoption, was allowed
and the state of Satara was annexed by the British Government. This annexation was
one of the causes of the Mutiny of 1857.
Balaji Vishwanath (17 14-2OA.D.)
224
Balaji Viswanath laid the foundation of the future Maratha confederacy. He sided
with Shahu and helped him in getting the throne of Maharastra. He enabled Shahu in
consolidating his power. Although the financial arrangement made by Viswanath made
Shahu dependent on him, yet in the long run his policy failed. He utilized all the
resources towards completing the construction of a Hindu empire which Shivaji had
started. For his task of a Hindu empire he had to look to the north as his path to the
sought was permanently closed by the independent existence of Tarbai's Kingdom.
Baji Rao I (1720-40 A.D.)
After the death of Balaji viswanath, his eldest son Baji Rao, was appointed the
Peshwa by Shahu. This was done inspite of the opposition of his advisors and chiefs.
Unlike his father, he was a successful commander and in a period of about twenty years
he made the Marathas one of the strongest power in lndia.
Baji Rao reorganized the armies of the state and started his campaigns in 1731. The
Maratha claim of Chauth and Sardermukhi was recognized. ln 1732, Baji Rao overran
the Province of Malwa and conquered Bundelkhand .Baji Rao appeared before the walls
of Delhi in 1737. The Nizam of Deccan advanced from the Deccan to help the Mughal
emperor but he was defeated near Bhopal and agreed to the cessation of Malwa and
Gujarat along with a war indemnity of Rs. 50 lacs. The Portuguese were defeated in
1739 and the lsland of Bassein was taken from them. Thus, Baji Rao was successful in
his policies but' his success was due to the sword. Had he been a little more conciliating
and considerate, he could have won over many of those who had become his avowed
enemies.
Balaji Baji Rao become the next Peshwa on the death of his father but he was
smart enough to take the worth of his cousin Sadasiva Rao. He consulted him in every
important matter of the state, and succeeded in taking the Martha power to its climax
in 1760.
Third Battle of Panipat (1761)
225
The cause of the Third Battle of Panipat lay in the decades preceding the battle.
The weakness of the Mughal Empire had created some sort of a power vaccum in
northern lndia. Ahmad Shah Abdali, who had succeeded Nadir Shah in Afghuanistan,
hoped to repeat the exploits of Nadir in lndia. The rising power of the Marathas infused
with the ideal of Hindu-pad-padshahi coveted position and power at Delhi. The
Marathas posed as defenders of the empire from internal and external dangers .ln 1752
the Nawab Wazir Safdar Jang had concluded an agreement with the Maratha offering to
conceded to the Marathas, among other things, the right of collecting Chauth from the.
Punjab; Sindh and the Doab in return for the Marathas defending the Mughal empire
against internal and external dangers. Though the agreement was not ratified by the
Emperor, it whetted Maratha hunger for territorial ambition in the North. Thus a clash
between Ahmad Shah Abdali and the Marathas lay in the logic of political developments.
ln 1757,Abadali had left Najib-ud-Daula as Mr. Bakhsi at Delhi and entrusted him with
the duty of protecting the Mughal emperor against the excesses of the over bearing
Wazir lmad-ul-Mulk. However, Alamgir Il found Najib even worse than the wazir, for
Najib treated the emperor "with a roughness unknown to the nobly-born Wazir. At this
stage the Wazir solicited Maratha help against Najib. Raghunath Rao entered Deihi in
May 1757 , he restored the emperor to his position, won over Ghazi-ud-din to their side
and compelled Najib to retire to his estate in Najibad.
ln March 1758 Raghunath Rao, the Maratha leader, crossed into the Punjab, and
drove away prince Timur, Ahmad Shah Abdali's son and agent out of the Punjab. The
following months saw the Marath authority extending up to attack. The Marathas
appointed Adina beg Khan as Governor of the Punjab on his agreeing to pay an annual
tribute of 75 lakhs of rupees. On Adina's death, Sabaji Sindhia assumed .charged as
Governor of the Punjab. Perhaps, it was Raghunath Rao's
226
The Maratha conquest of the Punjab from the Afghans was a direct challenge to
Abdali and the latter decided to accept it. Moreover, Najib Khan and the Bangash
Pathans, who had entertained designs of reviving Pathans rule in India, exhorted
Abadali to rescue the empire from the control of the infidel Marathas and promised all
support to him. Najib- ud-Daula also used his influence and secured to Ahmad Shah
Abdali the active co-operation of Shuja-ud-Daula (Nawab of Oudh), and Rohitla ChiefS
hafizRehmat Khan Sadullah Khan, Dundi Khan, and Mala Khan. "Ahmad Shah', writes
Sidney Owen, "was not only a King and a conqueror, but, as an Afghan, he
sympathized with the Rohillas; and as a devout Mussulman, he resented Maratha
aggression on his co- religionists in Hindustan. The cup of his furty was full; and he
resolved to bring to a decisive issue his quarrl with the Hindoo power which had thus
crossed his track of conquest, ill-treated his allies, and made war on true believers".
Ghazi-ud-din's extermination of Emperor Alamgir ll on November 1759 along with
many others upset Abdali's administrative arrangements at Delhi. Abdali planned to
chastise the wrong doers.
The Battle of Panipat, (14th January 1761).
Towards the closing months of 176l ghmad Shah Abadali with a large army
crossed the lndus and overran the Punjab. Finding resistance - impossible Sabaji and
Dattaji Sindhia had to fall back twoards Delhi. In the encounter that followed at Barari
Ghat, some ten miles north of Delhi (on 9 January 1760), Dattaji was killed. Jankaji
Sindhia and Mathar Rao Holkar also failed to check the .advance of Abadali and the
latter occupied Delhi.
To assert Maratha authority in the north, the Peshwa sent Sadashiv Rao Bhau to Delhi.
Bhau captured Delhi on 22August 1760. Proceeding from Delhi on 7 October, Bhau a
captured Kunjapura, so as to drive the invader to the north and relieve pressure on
Delhi. The two armies faced each other on the battlefield of Panipat in November 1760.
Both sides were handicapped for supplies and negotiated for peace. Since no meeting
227
ground was found, the baftle came on 14 January 1761. The Maratha last the day. The
Afghan victory was complete and the Maratha causalities were very heavy, estimated at
75,000. "There was not a home in Maharastra"; writes J.N. sarkar," That had not to
mourn the loss of a member, and several houses their very heads and entire generation
of leaders was cut off at one stroke..
Cause of the Maratha defeat
A number of factors were responsible for the defeat of the Marathas and victory
of Ahmad Shah Abdali.
1. Abdali's forces outnumbered the forces under the command of Bhauji. Sir J.N. sarkar
, on the basis of contemporary records, has estimated Abdalis army at 60,000 while the
Maratha Combatants did not exceed 45,000.
2. Near famine conditions prevailed in the Maratha camp at panipat. The road to Delhi
was cut off by the Afghan war. There was no food for men and no fodder for the
horses. The stench of the carcases of men and beasts lying uncremated and unburied
made the Maratha camp a virtual hell. So desperate was the food position that on 13
January 1761the officers and soldiers approached Bhau and said, "lt is now two days
that no man among us has got a grain to eat. A seer of grain can not be had even for
two rupees. Do not let up perish in this misery Let us make a valiant struggle against
the enemy and then what fate has ordained will happen.
3. While all the Muslim powers of Northern lndia rallied to the side of Ahmad Shah
Abdali, the Marathas had to fight alone. The over- bearing attitude of the Marathas and
their policy of indiscriminate plunder had estranged not only the Muslim powers but the
Hindu powers like the Jats and the Rajputs. Even the Sikhs, the deadly enemies of the
Afghans, did not help the Marathas.
4. Mutual jealousies of the Maratha commanders considerably weakened their side.
Bhau called Malhar Rao Holkar a dotard past his usefulness and lowered his esteem in
228
the eyes of the army and the public. Malhar Rao angrily remarked that it these proud
Brahmins of Poona (referring to Bhau) were not humbled by the enemy they would
rnake him and other captions of the Maratha caste wash their soliled clothes. Thus, the
Maratha captains were individualistic in spirit and their military tactics. The officers and
the soldiers alike defied discipline and disliked team - work as the destroyer of their
elam vital.
The campaigning, marching and discipline of Abdal's anrry was a direct constrast
to that of the Maraths. The entire Afghan troops worked according to a Single plan
under strict discipline, alike in the camp and battle field.
S: , Abdali's troops were not only better organized but better equipped. While
Abdali's troops used muskets, the Marathas fought mostly with swords and lances. The
heavy artillery of Abrahim Khan Gardi could not prove its usefulness in hand to hand
fighting. On the other hand, Abdali's swivel guns mounted on camel's back caused
havoc.
Ahmad Shah Abdali, on the other hand, was probably the best General of his
times in Asia and a worthy heir of Nadir Shah in capacity and spirit. Abadalis experience
and maturity were great assets. ln fact, Abadali superior tactics of war and his strategy
of action foiled all chances of Maratha success.
Political Significance of the Battle of Panipat
Historians have held divergent views about the effects of the battle on the
fortunes of the Maratha power in lndia. Maratha historians hold the view that the
Marathas lost nothing of political importance by it except of loss of 75,000 soliders, that
Ahmad Shah Abdali practically gained nothing, GS. Sardesai writes, "Notwithstanding
the tenible losses in man power suffered on that field by the Marathas, the disaster
decided nothing. ln fact, it Pushed forward in the distant sequef two prominent
members of the dominant race, Nane phadnavis and Mahadji Sindhia, both miraculously
escaping death on that fatal day, who resuscitated the power to its former glory. Not
229
long after the Battle of Panipat, the Maratha power began to prosper again as before
and continued to do so for forty years, unitl the dealth of Mahadji Dindhia or until
British supremacy was established early in the 19h Century by the second Maratha war
(1803). The disaster of Panipat was indeed like a natural visitration destroying life, but
leading to no decisive political consequence. To maintain that the disaster of Panipat
put an end to the dreams of supremacy cherished by the Marathas to misunderstand
the situation as recorded is contemporary documents.
J. N. Sarkar's view seems more objective. The Maratha losses in manpower were
very great. Out of the total of about one lakh persons only a few thousands escaped
alive. So, great was the disaster that for nearly three months the Peshwa could not get
authentic details about the causalities and the fate of the military leaders. Even the
Peshwa succumbed to the news of the disaster.
Conclusion Sidney owen writes that by the Third Battle of panipat the Maratha power was,
for the time, Shattered to atoms, and though the hydra- headed monster was not killed,
it was so effectually scoteched that it remained practically quiescent, until great British
statesmen were in a condition to cope with, and ultimately to master and disintegrate
it." Certainly, the battle cleared the, way for the rise of the British power in lndia.
3.7.4 THE MARATHA CONEEDERACY
lntroduction
Confederacy means a combination of autonomous political units or states which
combine for certain common purpose like defence, foreign affairs, etc. During the
period of Sahu (1708-1748), the peshwas became powerful. The perhwas, although
fifth in succession, came to be called the first Minister, i.e. the perhwas
THE MARATHA CONFEDERACY
230
lntroduction
8.17.4 Origin - The origin of this confederacy is traced back to Sahu, who insued
letters of authority to his various Maratha Sardars for collecting. Chauth and
Sardemukhi from various parts of lndia. These letters of authority were called
Saranjamdars and the system was called Saranjami. Consequently, under the pretext of
collecting Chauth and Sardesh Mukhi, these Maratha Sardars created spheres of
influence for themselves in different parts of lnida and eventually set up their own semiindependent states there.
A nominal recognition of the Maratha Peshwa as their nominal head, after the death of
Shahu, was the only thing they did and showed. ln this way rose up the Maratha
Confederacy, consisting of very important Maratha jagirdars like (1) Raghoji Bhonsle of
Berar, (2) The Gaekwar of Baroda, (3) The Holkar family of lndore, (a) Sindia of Gwalior
and (5) The Peshwa of Poona himself. It should , however, he remembered that it was
with the increase in the Maratha territories and it was also with a view to creating
interest in their respective spheres of influence that the Peshwa gave portions of lands
to the Maratha Sardars for their maintenance in those far of territories.
It was after the death of Shahu in 1749 that the Peshwa was made supreme in
the Maratha State, and as such, he began to carry on the affairs of the Government on
behalf of the royal family, while the Maratha Chiefs were confirmed in their respective
places provided they owed allegiance to the Peshwa. lt was during this time that the
two Maratha leaders, Malhar Rao Holkar and Ranoji Sindia, for the first time laid the
foundation of the two Semi-independent States in the Central lndia. with their capitals
at lndore and Gwalior which became important centres of the Maratha confederacy of
latter days. But Sydney Owen is of the opinion that it was during the Period of Balaji
Bajirao when the Maratha monarchy was converted into Maratha confederacy consisting
of five Maratha chiefs. The Peshwa was confirmed as the enduring and traditional
president of this confederacy. Though the Maratha leaders remained chafing under the
control of supremacy of the Peshwa and were slow in obeying his orders, yet he was in
231
all intents and purposes the practical superior of the Maratha Chiefs. Members of the
Maratha confederacy and the territorial limits of their states The following were the five members of the Maratha confederacy with their
respective territories.
(1) Raghuji Bhonsle ll, the Raja of BerarOne of these Semi-independent maratha Chiefs was the Peshwa's general,
Raghuji Bhonsle ll, the Raja of Berar, whose territory extended from Nagpur, to Cuttack.
ln the Maratha army Raghuji enjoyed the title of "Sena Sahib subab's as a military
leader. Being busy in the civil war against his brothers be could not participate in the
Maratha war against Tipu Sultan in 1791, but on Nana's asking he contributed ten lacs
of rupees as his Share in the war fund
(2) Sayaji - The Gaekwar of Baroda - Another leader of the Maratha confederacy was
Gaekwar of Baroda whose territories roughly comprised Gujarat and Kathiawar
Peninsula, with its capital at Baroda. The original ruler of Baroda was Sayaji who, being
physically unfit to rule, was represented by his younger brother, Fateh Singh.
(3) Holkar Family of lndore - Ahalya bai The third member of the confederacy was Holkar of lndore whoso territory embraced
the southern-most part of Malwa and after Malhar Rao Holkar's death these were
governed by his daughter in 1aw. Ahalya Bai, from 17oo to 1709s, when her death
occurred.
(4) Sindia of Gwalior - Mahadai Sindia
The fourth member of the Maratha confederacy was Sindia whose capital was
Gwalior. His territory comprised of Eastern Malwa, the lands west territory comprised of
Eastern Malwa, the lands west of Jumna and the Upper Ganges..
(5) Daulat Rao Sindia - end of the Maratha predominance
232
After the death of Mahadaji Sindia, Daulat Rao, who was devoid of his
(Mahadaji's) far sightedness, succeeded him, The moment he gave to power in his
hands, he began earnestly to take part in the intrigues and counter intrigues in the
Poona Durbar of the peshwa. He attempted to establish his control at Poona and in this
attempt he came into a serious clash with Jaswant Rao Holkar. The British took
advantage of the serious differences of these to great Maratha Sardars, defeated them
turn by turn in the second and the third Maratha wars and established their ascendancy
in lndia.
(6) The Peshwa of poona - The fifth members of the Maratha confederacy was the
Peshwa himself. He became the real leader of the confederacy in due course of time.
Thus the Peshwa became the real leader of the Maratha Confederacy and Poona, where
he removed his capital after the dealth of Shahu in 1749,became the Military and
political centre of the Naratha empire.
(7) The Piratical Chiefs of Western India
Besides these five, there were some other minor members of the Maratha
confederacy also among the piratical chiefs of western lndia, who caused frequent
troubles to the suppressed in the year 1812. company, till they were finally
The Objects of the Confederacy
The substance of the Maratha association was to make the position of the Peshwa
supreme over the other Chiefs in the Maratha empire. Its aim was to unite the Marathas
under the leadership of the Peshwa and to look to him for guidance. Their sole business
was to collect Chauth from the territories placed under their charge but in matters,
political or financial, they were always supposed to look to the peshwa for guidance,
without whose permission nothing could be done, he being the sole authority in the
state. Thus the office of the Peshwa became the greatest authority in the Maratha
Kingdom and, as such, no Maratha chief was to undertake any matter without the
guidance of the peshwa.They considered the peshwa as their head.
233
respectively. Most of the Maratha Chiefs had fought under the leadership of the Peshwa
in the third battle of Panipat in 1761and in this way had accepted the Supremacy of
Poona. The result of the combined efforts of the members of the Maratha confederacy
was that the Maratha Kingdom extended from Chambal and the Jumna to the Godavari,
from the Arabian Sea to the Bay of Bengal and the Marathas were in position to levy
Chauth over the whole of India from the Indus to the Southern Frontier of Mysore. The
Mughal Emperor was a pueel in their hands.
Under Madhav Rao-The Maratha Confederacy remained perfectly under the
Peshwa's control. lf there was any person who deserves credit for arresting the
centrifugal forces operating in the Maratha confederacy, after the third Battle of Panipat
in 1761, it was ltladho Rap l, (1761 -1772) He brought his pressure to bear upon Janoji
Bhonsle of Nagpur and forced him to submit to the central Government of the peshwa.
Similarly, if Mahada Sindia re-established the Maratna Supremacy in the North, he did it
in the name of the Peshwa.
Period of decline of the Maratha Confederacy (1773-1802)
But after the death of Madhavrao Peshwa in 1773, the Period of decline of the
confederacy began. Besides their loose allegiance to the confederacy, the different
members of the Maratha confederacy during this period were divided by national
distrust and selfish in trigues" and consequently then of the sacrificed their national
interests for the sake of their selfish personal interests. The Raja of Satara, the nominal
head of the Maratha confederacy, was already living virtually as a prisoner in his palace,
while all powers in western India had already passed into the hands of the Peshwa by
the will left behind by Raja Sahu on his death in 1749.So by this document the Raja of
Satara became only the 'Nayer of the Palace." But the Peshwas after the death of
Madhavrao -I also fell into the hands of their able Minister, Nana Pharnavis, as puppets
and the members of the Maratha confederacy began to assume independence of the
Central Government of the Peshwa and hence
interests as a whole for the sake of their personal selfish lnterests. Thus a sort of an
anomalous position cropped up and Raja was merely a puppet in the hands of the
Peshwa. Peshwa himself in turn was merely a puppet in the hands of his Wazir. Nana
Pharnavis,
Conclusion
Thus in view of the above discussion; we conclude that the Maratha confederacy
was a combination of the important Maratha Chiefs who expaned the Maratha Swarajya
in the far flung parts of lndia by their efforts but who ultimately felt from power
because of their mutual intrigues and jealories. Consequently, all the territories
conquered by them gradually slipped out of their control when they fell a victim to the
onslaughts of the British power which now stepped into their shoes as the paramount
power in lndia.
3.7.5 DECLINE OF MARATHAS
Mostly, the inherent defects in the character of the Maratha State brought the ruin of
the Marathas. No attempt was made at well, thought
warfare. The Peshwas seeking supplies of gun-power, cannon, medicines, gems and
even gumplaster from the British in Bomay.
Finally, in the contest between the British and Marathas, leadership played an
important role. There over many important leaders like Elphinstone, Sir John Malcolm,
Sir Thomas Munro, Lord Lake, etc. of whom the British could
hand, favourtism reigned among the Marathas, particularly the undue favours that they
conferred on Brahmins in the later period, destroyed the homogenity of the Marathas.
238
UNIT -IV
FOREIGN INVASION AND ADVENT OF EUROPEANS
Structure
4.0 Objectives
4.1 Introduction
4.2 Portuguse colonial Enterprise
4.2.1 De Almeida and other rulers
4.2.3 Causes of Failure
4.2.4 Political and Economic Consequence
4.3 Emergency of Afgan Power
4.3.1Nadir Shah Invasion
4.3.2 Effects
4.3.3 Ahmed Shah Abdali
4.3.4 Effects
4.4 Political , Cultural and Economic weakness on the eve of Brirish Conquest
4.4.1Political weakness
4.4.2 Economic weakness
4.4.3Cultural weakness
Explain the causes and effects of Ahmed Shah Abdalis invasion of lndia
Discover the political, cultural and economic weakness of Mughul empire before
the British conquest
4.2 (A)The Portuse colonial enterprise its political and economic consequence
The turn of the fifth century witnessed two invaders who approached India,namely,the
portuguse by sea and moghuls by land.Both initiated great and lasting changes.But
whers as
has been
justily appreciated, that of the portuguse has been both undervalued.in popular
mythology the portuguse contribution has been narrowed down to just two persons,via,
Vasco-do-Gama,
dauntless
navigator
and
European
discover
of
India,
and
Albuquerque, the creator by terror and the sword of a brief sea-borne portuguse empire
in Asia.
240
of the coast line of Africa came to be known to the Portuguese. They crossed Equator in
1471and reached the Congo in 1481.
ln 1487, Bartholomeo Diaz was carried by stroms past the cape of Good Hope.
He was patronized by King John ll. ln 1497, Vascodo Gama started on his expedition
under the patronage of King Emmanuel. To begin with, he covered the whole of the
route which had been followed by ziaz and crossed the cape of Good Hope. He reached
Mozambique. He got the help of an lndian pilot and set sail for lndia in April 1498. After
a voyage of a month, he reached Calibut. He was cordially received by King zamorin
who gave him certain privileges also.
The arrival of vasco da Gama on the lndian Scene was not liked at all by the
Arabs. They started rumours of many kinds against the Portuguese. Finding the
Situation hard, Vasco da Gama left lndia after a stay of about three months.
ln 1501, Vasco da Gama came to lndia for the second time and founded a
factory at Cannanove and returned to Portugal in 1503. In spite of the opposition from
the Arabs, the Portuguese were abte to establish their trading cetres at Calicut, Cochin,
and Cahnanove and they treated the Arabs with cruelty and oppression. After Vasco da
Gama left India, the Portuguese suffered. King zamorin attacked the Portuguese in
Cochin, but was defeate. This established the Supremacy of the Portuguese.
4.2.1 De Almeida (1505-09)
De Almeida was the first viceroy of the Portuguese possessions in his
countrymen to concentrate on the development of their naval power. ' This Policy has
rightly been called the "Blue Watef policy. Both Almeido and his son wee defeated and
kilted in 1509 by the Egyptians.
Alobuguerque (1509-15)
He was the second viceroy of the Portuguese in lndia. Mr. Stephens desired to
occupy certain important places for trading purposes, and to rule them directly.
241
The Portuguese were not satisfied with merely a share in the trade. They were
determined to control the same. This they were able to accomplish by setting up a
strong navy which helped them to command the sea. They also build fortresses to
grand the narrow waters. They set up a central establishment from which operations
could be directed on which the nevy could be based.
As regards the methods adopted by the Portuguese to control the tread, Some route,
and Some commodities on all routes, were monopolized for the benefit of the Kingdom
of Portugal. Subject to these restrictions, Indian or other ships could obtain licenses to
play between specified ports on payment of substantial fees. An unlicensed vessel was
liable to be captured and confiscated. The gun boats employed by the Portuguese to
Patrol the routes were more than a match for the cumbrous ships of their rivals. By
these methods, the Portuguese controlled the main trade routes through out the
sixteenth century. lt is true that some goods continued to reach Europe over land, but
that was due mainly to the increasing corruption of the Portuguese officials who looked
upon their posts as source of private gain and could be bribed to allow the contraband
good to pass.
The possessions of the Portuguese on the West Coast of India were an integral
port of the Kingdom of Portugal. However, settlements of less regular type cropped up
on the east coast of lndia. At various places in Bengal and on the Coromandel Coast.
Portuguese merchants settled with the consent of the local rulers. However, relying on
the prestige of their nation, they fortified their settlements, assumed right of self
government and eventually in some cases repudiated the authority of the Portuguese
viceroy at Goa. Thus Portuguese settlements became of lawlessness and in some cases
nests of pirates.
The immediate effects produced by the Portuguese in lndia were not great. ln
the field of politics, their capture of Goa involved them in emity with Bijapur. On the
whole, they maintained friendly relations with Mjayanagar, but they did not render any
material help to her in her, struggle against the Muslims. From the point of view of the
243
lndians, the appearance of the Portuguese merety added one more element in the
confused politics of the time. ln war, they introduced higher standards of efficiency in
artillery and musketry. They created a legend of invincibility which immensely helped
them in their work.
So far as commerce was concerned, it cannot be said that the diversion of trade
was accompanied by any great expansion in the exports of lndian goods. lt is probabte
that more pepper reached western Europe than before. Howevel the only new
development was the opening of new markets for lndian cotton goods in Western Africa
and Brazii. The Portuguese were not successful in developing the import trade. The
great bulk of their purchases were paid fro in silver. They could sell little except luxuries
and curiosites from Europe. The important service which they reridered to lndia was the
effective policing of the coastal trade. There were nests of pirates along the ltdalbar
coast who lived mainty by attacks on the small vessels which plied in great numbers
between Gujarat on the one side and Ceylon, Madras and Bengal on the other. The
Portuguese provided gun-boats to convoy the fleets of these vessets and thereby
established a reasonable degree of Security on the main line of lndian trade. However,
we must not forget the toll whether in licence fees or in bribes, which they levied on
lndian commerce, both coastal and foreign.
From the beginning of the 17th century the power of the Portuguese began to decline.
This was particularly due to the fact that in 1580 Portugal was made a part and parcel
of spain in the time Philip ll of spain. Spain herself was not doing wall at that time. She
could hardly be expected to defend the interest of the Portuguese. The result was that
near by one the Portuguese lost mnay of their possessions. They were turned out from
Amboyna by the Dutch. ln 1622, Ormuz, was snatched away by the Government of
lran. The Dutch got Malacca in 1640. They were also turned out from Ceylon in 1656. ln
1739 the Marathas got Bessein.
4.2.3 Causes of Failure of Portuguese in lndia
244
Many causes were responsible for the failure of the Portuguese empire in lndia.
After the death of Albuguerque, no strong person was sent by the Portuguese
Government to lndia. The result was that the Portuguese Empire began to disintegrate.
The Portuguese empire in lndia was corrupt. The salaries of officials were low and
consequently they felt no hesitation in accepting bribes from any quarter. The bulk of
the Portuguese officials were selfish. Unmindful of the sufferings of the people, they
were bent upon making fortunes for themselves.
The religious policy of the Portuguese was also responsible for their ruin. The
Portuguese introduced the lnquisition into lndia and they committed atrocities on those
who were not Christians. They ued all kinds of methods for the conversion of the
people of ldia to Christianity. Their coercive methods created bitterness in the minds of
the people. ln 1540, all the Hindu temples in the lsland of Goa were destroyed under
the orders of their king. The establishment of the Mughal empire was also partly
responsible for Portuguese failure. At the beginning of the 16tn, the Portuguese did not
meet any great opposition. However, after the accession of Akbar in 1556, the Mughal
power began to grow. The Mughals were ale to ring practically the whole of lndia under
their control. Under these circumstances, there was no scope for the growth of the
Portuguese power on the mainland of lndia. Portugat is a small country, did not have
enough resources for the conquest of a vast country like lndia. Moreover, the resources
werg divided between the Portuguese possessions in lndia and Brazil.
ln 1580, Portugal came under the control of spain. The result was that the
Spanish interest predominated and the Portuguese interests were subordinated. Various
restrictions were put on Portuguese enterprise in the interests of spain.
The rise of the Dutch and the English power in lndia created strong
rivals in the
country. They were more than a match for the Portuguese. The result was that by slow
degrees the Portuguese empire in lndia failed.
245
a viceroyalty at Goa in charge of the lndian and Persian territories; and (3) a
Governorship at Malacca to control the trade of Java and the spice Archipelago, the
Portuguese dominion was based upon command of the sea and upon possession of
forts at strategic points along the coast. They were bitterly jealous of all rivals at sea.
Besides controlling the whole of the export trade to Europe, the Portuguese
monopolized the port - to port trade on the Matabar coast and the trade from the
lndian to the Persia coast on the one side and Malacea on the other. The Portuguese
treatment of their native subjects and opponents showed "a consistent and systematic
cruelty and barbarity tower even than the standards of a cruel age."
Conclusion
After 1540, the Portuguese Government in lndia markedly came to be dominated
by priests-Dominicans, Franciscans and Jesuits who displayed an intolerant bigotry
and introduced all the honors of the inquisition into lndia. The Portuguese monopoly of
the lndian Ocean remained unbroken till 1595, fifteen years after the fatal union of
portgal and spain.
4.3(B)EMERGENCE OF AFGAN POWER
lntroduction
After his death in 1 227,Chergis Khan's vast empire tell to pieces. ln Afghanistan
some local Chiefs succeeded in establishing independent principalities and other
acknowledged Mongol Princes as Suzerains. This state of affairs continued unitl the end
of the 14th Century, When Timur (Tamerlane) conquered a large part of the country.
Timur's successors the Timrids, were great patrons of learning and the arts who
enriched their capital city of Heart with fine buildings. Under their rule (1 4A4-1507)
Afghanistan enjoyed peace and prosperity. Early in the 16h Century the Uzbeks, a
Turkic people, lose to power in Central Asia under Muharnmad Shaybani, who
triumphantly entered Heart in 1507. Babur, a direct descendant of Genghis and Timur
247
and the founder of the Mughal dynasty in lndia, made Kabul the capital of an
independent principality in 1504. ln December 1510, the safavid Shah Esmail, to avenge
an insult, attacked Shaybani, besieged him in Merv, and slew him in an amush.
During the next 200 years Afghanistan had no political identity and was parceled
between the Mughals of lndia and the safavids of Persia - the former holding Kabul
north to the Hindu Kush and the latter Heart and Farah Qandahar was for many years
in dispute.
Overthrow of Foreign rule - Periodic indigenous attempts were made to gain
independence. ln 1709, Mirveys Khan, an influential leader of the Hotaki Ghilzay tribe,
led to successful rising against Gorgin Khan, the Persian governor of Qandahar.
The Hotakis, Mir Veys Khan Governed Qandhar untit his death in 1715. ln 1716
the Abdalis of Herat, encouraged by example, took up arms against the Persians and
under their leader, Asadullah Khan, succeeded in liberating their province.
Mahmud, Mir vey's young son and successor, was not content with holding
Qandahar, and in 1722 he red about 20,000 men against lsfahan; the safavid
government surrendered after a six-month seige.
Mahmud immediately set out to recorganize the Persian administration and
economy, but he died in 1zz5r His young cousin Ashraf, who succeeded him, came to
power at a critical time; the afghans in Persia were threatened on all sides, the
Russians were advancing from the north, and the Ottoman Turks seized part of western
persia. lnternal strife and jealousy among the Afghan Chiefs made the situation worse.
Shah Ashraf halted the Russian advance at Darband and in 1726 inflicted a crushing
defeat on the Turks, who were marching on the capital. Meanwhile news was brought
to him that a brigand chiel Nadr Qoli Beg, had attacked rus and was on his way to take
Meshed and heart. Collecting alt available troops Ashraf hastened northward to meet
him but was defeated at Damghan on october 2, 1729 theAfghan position in peria was
248
thereafter untenable, and during the retreat Ashraf himself was murdered, probably on
orders from his causin, who was the holding Qandhar.
Nadir Shahs Invasion of India was an important foreign invasion of india in 173839.
invaded India with a fifty five thousand strong army, eventually attacking Delhi in March
1739 where sacked the city, after assuing orders for a general massacre to take place.
His army had defeated the Mughal emperor Muhammad Shahat the battle at karnal and
had taken over controle of northen India.
One of the most important event of the reign of Muhammed Shah was the invasion of
Nadirshah in 1739. Aurangzebs death had created a void in the Mughal Empire which
none of his successors were able to fill.Frequent struggles for throne and the betrayal
of ministers had resulted in the weakening of the empire.Nadir Shah, who from being a
chief of docoits had becam the king of Persia, saw the weak empire as an opportunity.
249
After consolidating his position in Persia, Nader Qoli Beg marched against Hevat
in 1732. The besiged fought desperaerly, but dissension forced them to sue for place.
impressed by their, vatour, Nader treated them with courtesy and recrcuited many of
them into his own army. He was elected shah of Persia, with the name Nader Shah, in
1736.
ln 1737 Nader Shah advanced with an army of 80,000 men against Qandahar.
The city fell after a year of siege, and Nader then came into conflict with the Mughal
Empire of lndia. He reiged Ghazna and Kabul and advancing in to lndia, defeated the
Mughals at Kamal, orth of Delhi, in 1739. then having seized the Jeweb and treasure of
the capital; including the Koh-i-noor diamond and the famous peacock throne, he
returned to Persia. He was assassinated at Khabushan in 1141.
The following factors were responsible for Nader Shah's invasion of lndia.
(1)
The Mughal Emperors had long been in the practice of exchanging ambassadors
with the Persian courts. This diplomatic usage was suddenly discontinued by
Mohammad Shah, the Mughal Emperor, when Nadir Shah ascended the throne. Nadin
Shah resented this very much.
(2) - In 1737, immediately after his accession to the throne of Persia, Nadir Shah
marched against Kandahar with 80,000 men, because in his opinon, "so long as that
centre of Afghan power was not destroyed, it would remain a mehace to the safety
persia. Moreover, with the conquest of Kandahar the full heritage of salpvis could not
be said to have come into his possession'. Further, he wanted to teach the Afghans a
very good lesson for their having invaded and occupied Persia and, side by side with it
after subduing them, to keep them under his obedience. Being frightened by the siege
of Kandahar by Nadir Shah, most of the Afghans, in order to save their lives from him,
fled from Kandahar and took refuge in the Mughul province of Kabul. Two of these
Afghans were Mir wais and his son Hussain, the usurpers of Kandahar, the Persian
250
province. The new ruler of Persia resented this and sent an ambassador to the court of
Mohammad Shah, the Mughal Emperor, not to give refuge to the Afghan fugitives in
Kabul. The Emperor, no dout, promised to do the needful, but failed to carry out his
undertaking.
(3) - A second ambassador was sent to Delhi repeating the request with no better
result.
ln 1737, therefore, when hostilities had already begun in Kandahar, Nadir Shah
dispatched a third envoy to the Mughal court expecting an urgent and clear reply. But
the "Mughal sphinx was silent as ever. On the other and, the ambassador was detained
in the Mughal court and no reply was sent to Nadir Shah tor a year. A year passed and
matters crossed the frontiers of diplomacy. Ndir Shah making the disgrace of the
ambassador as an excuse decided on ivading lndia.
(4)
Prof. S.R. Sharma says, 'ln the last analysis, this must be attributed to the
ambitions of Nadir Shah on the one hand and the apparent weakness of the Mughal
Empire on the other. Anand Ram Mukhlis writes, "The train had long been laid and from
these negotiations sprang the spark that fired it ..... the true cause was the weakness
of its (Hindustan's) monarchy". The fabulous wealth of lndia also prompted him to
enrich himself with her spoils.
(5) - After the death of Aurangzeb, the Mughal Emperors had very sadly neglected the
defence of Afghanistian and the Punjab and as such, Nadir Shah defeated a Mughal
force of 20,000 strong which was stationed at Khyber pass under nasir Khan, the
Mughal governor of Kabul. Then he crossed the river sind and proceeded towards
Lahore. The Punjab was at this time under its governor Zakariya Kfran. He was, no
doubt, 'a brave and an active soldier and 'a good administrator of, but being. a Turani
foreigher, he was hated by the Hindustranis at court who enioyed favor with the
Emprpr- The gateway of lndia being in no state of defence Nadir Shahie invasion was
both tempted and facilitated. Under these circurnstanoss, Nadir Shatr occupied the
251
North Westem Frontier province and Punjab without any difficulty. Thus Zakariya Khan,
finding resistance impossible surrendered to the invader and thus saved the city of
Lahore from the wrath of the invader. He was made to pay a contribution of 20lakhs of
rupees, in order to retain his governorship. Similarly, Nasir Khan was also restored to
the viceroyalty of Kabul and Peshawar.
(b) The Battle of Karnal (1739) - Continuing on his march, Nadir Shah appeared in
the neighbourbood of Karnal where Mohammad Shah's army sent from Delhi awaited
him. The fateful battle of Karnal was fought on the 13h February, 1739 between the
two armies. The royal army consisted of 2,00,000 horsemen and 5,000 gunners. On the
other hand, the Persean army was far less in strength. Sir Jadu nath Sarkar puts down
the strength of the Persian army at 55,000 horses. This number is nearest the truth: He
also states, the total lndian force at karnal could not have exceeded 75,000. But
including the non-combatants it was very Fear a million men". The Mughals broke at
length and fled and the Persians got decisive victory in this battle. As to the cause of
the failure of the Mughals, the writer of the "Bayane-i-Waki stiates, 'that if the army of
Hindustan had been fully provided with artillery the Persians would not have been abte
to oppose it? Of the lndian army 30,000, according to one account, and 17000
according to another account, were slain in this battle the vanquished sued for peace
by sending Nizarn-Ul-Mulk Nadirs camp. These were the results of the battle of Kamal.
(d), After the Battle of Karnal a massane of unprecedented dimension witnessed in
Delhi. on l1th March 1zgg, the chandni chowk, the Paribah Bazar and the Building
around the Jama Masjit set fired and reduced to ashex. The inhabitant, one and all,
were slaughtered. The town was reduced to ashes and had the appearance of a plain
consumed with fire. At last the unlucky Mughal Emperor, duty accompanied by two of
his waizrs, presented themselves before Nadir Shah and beseeched him to spare the
lives of his subjects. On this, Nadir Shah ordered the carnage to be stopped.
Thus, the great irvader left the Mughul Empere bleadig and postrate. According to
estimately the Persians invaders took avay to crores of rupees. He carried away 100
252
elephants, 7000 horses, 10,ooo camels, 100 eunuchs, 130 writers including peacock
Throne. Thus after restoring Mohammed Shah on the throne and warning him against
the treacherous conduct of Nizam-Ul-Mul who, he said was cunning, self-seeking and
more ambitious then became a subject.
4.3.2 Results of Nadir Shah's Invasion
(1) Loss of Sind, Kabul and the West Punjab- Before has departure from Delhi on
5th May 1739, Nadir shah placed the crown of Hindustan on the head of Mohammad
shah who was made to Surrender to Nadir the Trans - lndus provinces including sind,
Kabul and the Western Punjab, which were thus permanently lost to be the
descendants of babur. These provinces were the most vital part of the Mughal Empire.
ln other words, the first result of Nadir Shah's invasion on India was that is struck a
very deadly blow on the Mughal Empire and hastended its downfall. With the Khyber
pass and Peshwar district in foreign hands, there was established a power which served
as a constant menace to the Mughal authority at Delhi.
(21 Loss of Prestige - Nadir Shah's invasion exposed to the world the rottenness of
the Mughal Empire and this, therefore, destroyed its prestige, Whatever amount of it
was left over.
(3) Dismemberment of the Mughal Empire complete- immediately after the
departure of Nadir Shah, lndia fell a victim to a great disorder, confusion, an danrchy.
The central Government was paralysed and the administration was thrown into utter
confusion. Robbery and brigandage became common in this country the roads became
unsafe and the whole tracts of land laid waste. This confusion and disorder of an
unprecedented magnitude offered suited opportunities to Mughal nobles and others to
increase their power' appropriate the Mughal territories to themselves and declare
themselves as independent from the Mughal Empire. Thus the Marathas became
dominant in Malwa, Gujarat and Bundlekhend. The Rohillas set up their own
independent state in Rohilakhand under Mohammad Khan. The best three subas or
253
provinces of the Mughal Empire, Bengar, Bihar and orissa, declared their independence
under the leadership of Ali Vardikhan.
(4) Mughal empire deprived of entire wealth :
The Mughal Empire was destitute of the accumulated wealth of 348 years in a
moment. All the rare and precious articles were permanently lost and all the valuable
articles, jewels and other properties of the nobles, rich citizens and the Mughal
countries were taken away by the invarders. ln this way, alt the economic resources of
the Mughal Empire were exhausted and the empie stood completely bankrupt. This
complete breakdown of the finances of the empire completely incapacitated the Mughal
emperors to arrest the further progress of dismemberment of the empire by effectively
controlling the remaining parts ofit.
Conclusion
ln short, Nadir Shah's invasion gave a final death- blow to the already tettering
Mughal Empire and left it bleeding, prostrate and helpless. The ruin of the Mughal
Empire which was a treaty crumbling to pieces was complete.
the Abdali tribe name to the Durrani tribe. Shah gave Abdali the command over a
cavalry of Abdali tribesmen.
Ahmed Shah Abdali or Durrani was an important general of Nadir Shah. When
after the conquest of Qandhar, Nadir Shah decided to settle all his Abdali subjects
there, the relatives of Ahmed Shah also settled there. After the murder of Nadir Shah in
1741, all the Afgans proceeded towards Qandhar and chose Ahmad Shah Abdali as their
leader. On reaching Qardhel they had to fight against the local gagison which was
captured. Ahmed Abdali was declared Emperor and coins were struck in his name. After
Qandhar Ahmad Shah Abdali occupied Gazni, Kabul and peshura All that added to his
personal glory and the morale of his troops.
Cause of lnvasion
Ahmed Shah Abdali ted as many as seven expedition, against lndia between
1748 and 1767. He undertook those invasions mainly with a view to establish Afgan
suremary over lndia. There wee many factors which encouraged him to undertake
those invasion. The weak and precarious condition of the Maghul empire encouraged
him in his invasion. He had seen the weakness of the Moghul empire when he carne to
lndia alongwith Nadir Shah. In subsequent years, the Moghul, Empire became weaker
further. Ahmed Shah Addali wanted to take advantage of that position. The meglect of
the North western border by the later Mughals encouraged him to lanch so many
invasions. The Mughul rulers completely neglected the roads, passes etc, on the
boarder. They did not emptay any intelligence to keep the court informed about the
development on the boarder. This indifferent attitude of the later Moghul rulers towards
the defence of they boarder was fully exploited by the invader. The view of Elphinstone
255
is that Ahmad Shah Abdali invaded lndia so many times with a view to make financial
Gains and realize his political ambitions. He carried with him a lot of money and gifts
from lndia which were utilized by him for increasing his military strength and improving
its organization. The immediate cause of his invasion of lndia was that he was invited
by Shah Nawaz Khan, the Governor of the Punjab, to undertake an invasion of lndia.
That invitation filled very well into the ambitious plans of Ahmad Shah Abdali.
First lnvasion
Ahmad Shah Abdali crossed the lndus and the Jhelum to invade the Punjab in
1748. Lahore and Srihind were occupied but he was defeated by the Mughal army near
sirhind and he was forced to withdraw.
Second lnvasion
Ahmad Shah Abdali was not prepared to put up with the insult and he led
another attack on lndia in 1749, Muin Khan, Governor of the Punjab, resisted the
advance of Abdali and asked for the reinforcements. As he did not get any help, he
agreed to pay Rs. 14000 as annual tribute to Abdali.
Third lnvasion
Ahmad Shah Abdali led the third invasion of India towards the close of 1751as the
promised tribute was not paid to him. After defeating the Governor of the Punjab,
Abdali advanced towards Delhi. The Mughal Emperor offered to transfer Multan and
Punjab to Abdati. The view of some scholars is that Ahmad Shah Abdali also conquered
Kashmir during his third invasion and appointed his own Governor. He had to go back
because there was a possibility of opposition at home at that time.
Fourth Invasion
Ahmad Shah Abdali invaded lndia for the fourth time to punish lmad-ul-Mulk who
had appointed his own man as the Governor of the Punjab. Ahmad Shah Abdali had
256
appointed Mir Mannu as his agent and Governor of the Punjab. ln 1753, after the death
of Mir Mannu, his infant son, under the Regency of his mother Mughlani Begum,
succeeded him. ln May 1754, even this successor of Mir Mannu died. After that there
was chaos and confusion in the Punjab. Mughlani Begum invited lmad-ul-Mulk, the
Wazir of Delhi and he appointed Mir Munim as the Governor of the Punjab after
imprisoning Mughlani Begum, when Ahmad Shah Abdali came to know of these
developments, he decided to attack lndia. He came to lndia in November 1750. As soon
as he reached Lahore, Mir Munim ran away to Delhi. After capturing the Punjab, Afrmad
Shah Abdali marched towards Delhi. He reached Delhi on 23 January 1757 and
captured the city. He stayed in Delhi for about a month and repeated the carnage and
arson of the type of Nadir Shahis invasion. The rich and poor, noblemen and
commoners, men and women all suffered torture and dis grace indiscriminately.
After pillaging Delhi, the Afghan army marched out leaving a trail of burning
villages, rotting corpses and desolation. Crushing the Jats on the way, they proceeded
to Mathura, Brindban and Gokul. The carnage and destruction that visited these sacred
towns beggars description. For 7 days following the general slaughter. 'the water (of
the Jamuna) flowed of a blood-red colour". Temples were desecrated, priests and
Sadhus were put to the sword. Women were dishonoured and Children were cut to
pieces. There was no atrocity which was not perpetrated. However, the outbreak of
cholera halled the Afgan army And compelled him to return home. Before his departure
from Delhi Abdali compelled the Mughal Emperor to cede him Kashmir, Lahore, sirhird
and Multan. He appointed Timur shah to look after the Government of those region.
(5) Fifth invasion - 1759 and the Third Battle of panipat, 1761- Hardly a year had
passed after the departure of Ahmed Shah Abdali from lndia when the Sikhs, Adeena
Beg and the Marathas joined hands together and expelled prince Timur and his
commander, Jahan Khan, from the Punjab. Ahmed Shah considered the defeat of the
prince as his personal defeat and, as such, decided to punish the Marathas, the Sikhs
and Adeena Beg. Hence a clash between the Marathas and Ahmed Shah Abadli became
257
inevitable. The Abadali Sardar invaded the Punjab the fifth time in 1759-60. After
smashing the enemies in the Punjab, he proceeded towards Delhi to Punish the
Marathas. A fierce battle was fought in the historic plain of Panipath in 1761, called the
Third Battle of Panipat, in which the Marathas suffered a clear defeat at the hands of
Ahmed Shah Abdali.
(6) Sixth, Seventh and Eighth invasions
After the Third Battle of Panipat in 1761, Ahmed Shah Abdali had completely
become the master of the Punjab, Kashmir, sind and Sirhind but the rise of the Sikh
Misls during this period had made his occupation of the Puniab very very ineffective.
The Sikhs killed Khawaja, the governor of the Punjab, occupied Lahore and struck their
own coins. Not only this, but they also defeated and expelled the two Afghan faujadars
of Jullundur, Saadat Khan and Sadiq Khan. Moreover, the Sikhs now decided to punish
Mahant Akit Das, the leader of Niranjani sect, who was acting as a secret spy of Ahmed
Shah Abadali against the Sikhs. ln response to this invitation, Ahmed Shah Abdali
invaded the Punjab three times more in 1762, 1764 and 1 766-67, but inspite of the
best efforts and with all the resources of a powerful ruler, he could not crush the Sikhs.
The Sikhs rendered all his Schemes in effective and thus themselves occupied most of
the Punjab by the year 1767 and set up an independent Sikh state there. The regions
beyond the river lndus remained with Ahmed Shah Abdali, while the entire Manjha
region of central Punjab with Lahore as its capital became an independent Sikh state
under the Sikh Misls.
4.3.4 The Results of Ahmed Shah Abadii's lnvasions
There is no doubt that Ahmed Shah Abdali, on the occasion of any of his
invasions, could not stay in lndia for a long time and each time he had to hurry back to
his country under one reason or the other, yet, it wilt be difficult to deny that inspite of
all this, his invasions in lndia did have many effects on the history of lndia in many
ways, as discussed below :258
(1) These invasions paved the way for the rise of the Sikh power in the
Punjab - From 1752 to 1761 , there were frequent wars amongst the four great
powers to gain ascendancy in the Punjab. These powers were (1) The Durranis (2)The
Mughals (3) The Marathas, (4) The Sikhs. The invasions of Ahmed Shah Abdali at first
so much weakened the Mughal Empire that he was able to wrest away the two
provinces of the Punjab and sind from the Mughal Emperor in 1752. Third Battle of
Panipat was fought between him and the Marathas, who were thus given a crushing
defeat by the Afghans under their Abdati Sardar. Thus with their defeat in the Third
Battle of Pani Pat, the Marathas lost all opportunities to set up their empire in the
Punjab. Now with the extinction of the two powers in the Punjab, the Mughal and the
Marathas only two powers now remained behind to contest their supremacy there, and
these powers the Sikhs and the Afghas. lnspite of his many invasions on the Punjab to
crush the Sikh Power, he failed and ultimately in his despair and helplessness he was
forced to quite the Punjab which now the Sikhs occupied.
(2) They inflicted stunning blows to the tottering Mughal EmpireThe Mughal Empire had already became squeezed and now it was confined to
the four walls of Delhi City, the rest of the provinces having declared their independene
from the Mughal Empire. Ahmed Shah's invasions hastened the downfall of the Mughal
Empire. The anarchy destroyed the internal organization and vitality of the Mugnai
government. This also gave rise to insubordination and indiscipline towards the Mughal
government on the part of the Mughal officers and officials. Thus, these invasions
Proved stunning blows to the already crumbling Mughal Empire
(3) The dream of the Marathas to found the Hindu Empire after the Mughals
came to nothing - lt is not to be forgotten that the Third Battle of Panipat was not
fought between the Mughal ruler of Delhi and the Afghan invader, but between the
Marathas and Abdali. The crushing defeat was, therefore a disaster fo the Marathas and
not for the Emperor. Thus, as said above, the dream of the Marathas to establish a
Hindu Pad padshahi from the Deccan right up to the Punjab came to nothing. After their
259
defeat in the Third battle of Panipat, the Marathas had to{ace a lot of troubles before
they could recover from the deadly effects of the battle. Their prestige felt down very
tow and the Charm of their invincibility also broke down. The result of all this was that
the organization and authority of the Marathas became weak and their enthusiasm and
initiative became almost dead.
(4) They made the way clear for the third power, i.e. The English to establish
their rule in lndia - The Afghan invasions on lndia under Ahmed Shah Abdali
weakened the Marathas so much that the English found no difficulty in founding their
Empire in lndia later on. Even Sir Desai admits that at Panipat "The field was made
clear for the third . power, i.e, the English'. This amp.ly corroborated by the easy
manner in which four years after panipat, clive obtained the Diwani of Bengal i.e.,
practically the mastery of that rich province and consequently of lndia.
Conclusion
ln the middle of the eighteenth century in the history of lndia, two powers came
into clash with each other. One was deeling powr of the Mughals and other was rising
power of the Marathas. But the Third Battle of Panipath weakened these two powers to
such an extent that the English carne forward to be the legal heir to the Moghul
Empire. According S.R. Sharma "The doom of the Empire which was weakened from
within, was seated by the two fateful invaders who came from without first Nadir Shah
and then Ahmed Shah Abdali dealt the to thering empire blows which it was illequepped to subtain."
4.4(C)POLITICAL, CULTURALAND ECONOMIC WEAKNESS ON THE EVE OF THE
BRITISH CONQUEST
lntroduction
On the eve of the British conquest, Indian socio-cultural and political ethos was
in a state of turmoil. A study of the socio-political scence are is must instructive. lt
260
reveals some of the defects and weakness of lndian medieval social, economic and
poltical structure which were responsible for the eventual defeat of the country by the
English East lndia Company.
4.4.1 Political Weakness
Decaying Nobility
One of the foremost political weakness before the comping of the British was position of
nobility. The weakness of the King could have been successfully overcome and covered
by an alert efficient and loyal nobility. The character of nobility had also deteoriated.
Many nobles lived extravagantly and beyond their means. Many of them became ease
loving and fond of unnecessary luxury. Many of them even deserted in the art of
fighting. Earlier, many able persons from lower classes had been able to rise to the
ranks of nobility, thus infusing fresh blood in to it.
Later the existing families of nobles began to monopolised all offices, barring the way
to fresh comers. Not all the nobles, how
weak and ineffiesient. A large number of energetic and able officials and brave and
brilliant military commanders came into prominence during the 18th century,
but most of them did not benefit the Empire because they used their talents to promote
their own interest, and to fight each other rather then to serve the state and society.
ln fact, country to the popular belief, the major weakness of the Mughul during the
18th century layy, not in the decline in the average ability of the nobles or their moral
decay, but in their selfishness and look of devotion to the state. ln order to increase
their power, prestige and income, the nobles formed faction against each other and
even against the King. Their Mutual quarrels exhausted the Empire, affected its
cohesion and in the end made it an easy tray to foreign conquerors. There charctericts
were not the monopoly of the Mughal nobility at the cutre. They were found in equal
measure among the rising Maratha chiefs, the Rajput Raja the Jats, the Sikhs, new
261
rulers of autonomous provinces, and the other innumerable adventures who rose to
fame and power before coming of the British to lndia.
Lack of Nationalism- An important, political wakeness before the coming of British
was absence of the spirit of political nationalism among the people. This was because
lndia at the time lacked political nationalism among the people. This was because lndia
at the time lacked the element which constitute a modern nation. The people of lndia
did not feel that they were all lndians, or they were conscious of oneness or of having
common interests, even though elements of cultural unity had existed in the country
for. centuries. Therefore, there did not exist the ideal of living and dyning for ones
nation. lnstead people were loyal to persons, tribes, eastes and religious seets.
Political weakness in different States
On the debris of the Mughal Empire and its political system arose a large number
of independent and semi independent powers such as Bengat, Avadh, Hyderabad,
Mysore and the Mavatha Kingdom. lt is there powers which challenged the British
attempt at supremacy in lndia. However, these powers unable to form a common
political platform against the British Power.
Hyderabad- The stale of Hyderabad founded by Nizam - ul-Mulk Doaf Jah leading
nobles of the post at the time lacked the element which constitute a modern nation.
The people of lndia did not feel that they were all lndians, nor they u/ere conscious of
oneness or of having common interests, even though elements of culture unity had
existed in the country for conturies. Therefore, there did not exist the ideal of living and
dying for one's nation. lnstead people were loyal to persons
On the ruins of the Mughal Empire and its political system arose a large number of
independent and semi independent powers such as Bengal, Avadh, Hyderabad, Mysore
and the Mavatha Kingdom. lt is there powers which challenged the British attempt at
supremacy in lndia. However, these powers unable to form a common political platform
against the British power
262
much for the victory of foreigner. The Bengal Nawab also failed to check the growing
corruption among their officials. Even judicial official the Qazi and Muftis were given to
taking bribes. The foreign companies took full advantage of this weakness to undermine
official rules and regulators and policies.
Maratha - The most important challenge to the decaying Mughal power came from
the Maratha kingdom which was most powerful of the successor states. ln fact, it
only
possessed the strength to fill the political vaccum created by the disintegrated of
Mughul empire. But the Maratha Sardars lacked unity, and they lacked outlook and
programme which were necessary for founding all lndia empire.
This basically because the Maratha Empire represented the same decadent
'social order as the Moghul Empire did and suffered from the same underlying
weakness. The Maratha chiefs were very similar to the later Mughal nobles, just as the
Saranjami System was similar to the Mughal system of Jagirs. So long as there existed
a strong central authority and the need for mutual cooperation against a common
enemy, the Mughals, they remained united in a loose Union. But at the first opportunity
they tended to assert their autonomy. lf anything, they were even loss disciplined than
the Mughal nobles.
Like the Mughals, the Maratha rulers were also mainly interested in raising
revenue from the helpless peasantry. For example they too collected nearly half of the
agricultural production as tax. Unlike the Mughals, they failed even to give sound
administration to the people outside Maharastra. They could not irspire the lndian
people with any high degree of loyality than the Mughals had successed in doing. Their
dominion too depended on force and force alone. The only way the Maratha could have
stood up to the mounting British power was to have transformed their state into a
modern state. On the other hand, the European knocking at the gates of lndia had the
benefit of coming from societies which had evolved a superor economic system and
which were more advanced in science and technologys' .
264
The tragedy of the dealing of the Mughal Empire was that its courage fell on a
foreign power which dissolved, in its own interest, the centuries old socio-economic and
political structure of the country and replaced of with a colonial structure
4.4.2 - Economic weakenes
lndia before advent of British failed to make progress economically, socially, or
culturally at a pace which would have saved the country from collapse.
The
increasing revenue demand of the state, the oppression of officials, the greed and
rapacity of the nobles, revenue farmers, and the zamindars, the marches and counter
marches of the rival armies, and the depredations of the numerous adventures roaming
the land during the first hald fo the 18th century made the life of the people quite
wetched.
lndia of those days was also a land of contrsts. Incredible poverty existed
side by side with extreme riches and lavishness. On the one hand, there were rich and
powerful nobles stepped in luxury and comfort. On the other, backward, oppressed and
impoverished peasants living at the bare subsistence level and having to bear all sorts
injustice and inequities. Even so, the life of the lndian masses was by and large better
at this time than it was after over 100 years of British.
The main weakness of lndian agriculture during 18th century was technically
backward and sluggish. The technique of production had remained stationary for
century. The peasant tried. to make up for technical backwardness by working very
hard. He in fact, performed miracles of production; moreover, he did not usually, suffer
from shortage of land. But, unfortunately, he seldom reaped the fruits of his labour.
Even though it was his product that supported the rest of the society, his own reward
was miserably inadequate. The state, the Zamindars, the jagirs and the revenue
formers tried to extract the maximum amount from him. This was as true of the Mughal
state as of the Maratha or Sikh Chief or other successors of the Mughal state
265
Indian villages were largely self-sufficient and imported little from outside and
the means of communication were backward, extensive trade within the country and
between lndia and other countries of Aria and Europe was carried on under the
Mughals. lndia imported pearls, raw silk wool, dates, dried fruits and rose water from
the persion Gulf region; coffee, gold, drugs, and honey from Arbia; tea, sugar, porcelain
and silk from China; gold, musk, and woolen cloth from Tibet; tin from Singapore;
spices, perfumes, arrack; and sugar from the Indonesian islands; ivory and drugs from
Africa; and woolen cloth, metal such as copper, iron, and lead, and paper from Europe.
lndia's most significant article of export was cotton textile which were famours all
over the world for their superiority and were in demand every where. lndia also
exported raw silts ad silk fabric, hardware, indgo, salt petre, opium, rice, wheat, sugar,
pepper and other spices, precious stones, and drugs.
sufficient in handicrafts and agricultural products.It did not import foreign goods on a
large scale' On the other hand, its industrial and agricultural products had a steady
market abroad. Consequently, it exported more than it imported and its trade was
balanced by import of silver and gold. ln fact, India was known as a sink of precious
metals. :
Regular conflict and disturbance of law and order in many areas during the 18th
century harmed the countrys trade to some extent and in some directions. Many
trading centers were looted by the contestants for power and by foreign invaders. Many
of the trade routes were infested with orgaised bands of robbers, and traders, and their
carvans were regularly looted. Even the road between the two imperial cities, Delhi and
Agra, was made insecure by the marauders.
Moreover, with the r:ise of autonomous provincial regimes and innumerable
local chiefs, the number of custom houses or chowkies grew by heaps and bounds.
Every petty or large ruler tried to increase his income by imposing heavy customs duties
on goods entering or passing through his territories. All these factors had an injurious
effect on trade though much less than generally believed. The improverishrnent of the
266
nobles, who were the largest customers of luxury products in which trade was
conducted, also injured internal trade.
Political factors which impair trade also adversdy affected urban industries. Many
prosperous cities, centres of flourishing industry, were sacked and devastated. Delhi
was plundered by Nadir Shah; Lahore, Delhi and Mathura by Ahmad Shah Abdali; Agra
by the Jats Surat and other cities of Gujarat and the Deccan by Maratha Chiefs; Sarhind
by the Sikhs, and so on. Similarly, artisans catering to the needs of the feudal class and
the court suffered as the fortunes of their patrons declined. The decline of internal and
foreign trade also hit them hard
industries in other parts of the country gained as a result of expansion in trade with
Europe due to the activities of the European trading companies.
Even so lndia remained a land of extensive manufactures. Indian artisans still enjoyed
fame all the world over for the skill. lndia was still a large scale manufacturer of cotton
and silk fabrics, sugar, jute. Dye-stuffs, mineral and metallic products like arms, metal
wares, and saltpeter and oils. The important centres of textile industry were Decca and
Murshidabad in Bengal, Patna in Bihar, Surat, Ahmedabad and Broach in Gujarat,
Chanderi in Madhya Pradesh, Burhanpur in Maharastra, Jaunpur, Varanas, Lucknow,
and Agra in U.P. Multan and Lahore in the Punjab, Masulipatam, Aurangabad, chicacore
and Mshakhapatnam in Andhra, Bangarore in Mysore, and Coimbatore and Madurai in
Madras. Kashmir was a centre of woolen manufactures. Ship-building industry
flourished in Maharastra, Andhra, and Bengal. Writing about the real skiil of indians in
this respect, an English observer. "ln ship building they probably taught the English far
more than they learnt from them". The European companies bought many lndian-made
ships for their use.
ln fact, at the dawn of the 19h century India was one of the main centres of
world trade and industry. Peter the Great of Russia was led to exclaim.
267
"Bear in mind that the commerce of lndia is the commerce of the world and '.. he
who can exclusively command it is the dictator of Europe.
4.4.3 Cultural Weakness
Culturally, lndia showed signs of degradation during the 19th Century. Cultural
continuity with the preceding centuries was, of course, maintained .But at the same
time .culture remained wholly traditionalist. Cultural activity of the time were mostly
financed by the Royal court, rulers, and nobles and Chiefs whose impoverishment led to
their: gradual decline.' The most rapid declire occurred precisety in those branches of
art which depended on the patronage of Kings, Princes and nobles. This was reflected
in the Mughar architecture and painting. Many of the painters of the Mughal school
migrated to provincial courts ad flourished at Hyderabad, Lucknow, Kashmir and Patna.
At the same time new school of paintings were
paintings of Kangra and Rajput school revealed new vitality and taste . In the field of
architecture, the Imambra of Lucknow , reveals proficiency in technique but decadence
in architectural taste .in the other hand the city of Jaipur and its building were an
example of continuing vigour. Magic continued to develop and flourish in the 18 th
century.
Poetry in
every the lndian language lost its touch with life had became
is reflected the
prevailing sene of despair and cynicism, while its content reflected the impoverishment
of the spiritual life of its patrons, the real nobles and kings.
A notewortly characteristic of the literary life of the 18th century was the spread
of Urdu language and vigourous growth of Urdu poetry. Urdu gradually became the
medium of social intercourse among the upper classes of northern lndia. while Urdu
poetry shared in common the weakness of the contemporary literary in other lndia
languages. It produced brilliant poets like Mir, Sauda, Nazir, and in the 19th century
that great intellect Mirza Ghalib.
268
in the single minded persuit of selfish aims. Many of the nobles were pray to degrading
vices and excessive luxury. Most of them took bribes when in office. Surprisingly
enough, the common people were not debased to any marked extent. They continued
to exhibit a high degree of personal integrity and morality
Conclusion
So before the
Economic and Cultural condition was in State of Stagnaion. The Stagnation of lndia was
broken and new forces of change emerged. This process
contact inevitable brought with it intense misery and national dilapidation not to
mention economic, political and cultural backwardness. But it was precisely these new
forces of change which were to provide the vitality of modern lndia.
**********
270